diff options
Diffstat (limited to '2942-h/2942-h.htm')
| -rw-r--r-- | 2942-h/2942-h.htm | 9166 |
1 files changed, 9166 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/2942-h/2942-h.htm b/2942-h/2942-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..71ea898 --- /dev/null +++ b/2942-h/2942-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,9166 @@ +<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?> + +<!DOCTYPE html + PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" + "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" > + +<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en"> + <head> + <title> + Two Penniless Princesses, by Charlotte M. Yonge + </title> + <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve"> + + body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify} + P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .25em; margin-bottom: .25em; } + H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; } + hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;} + .foot { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 90%; } + blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;} + .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;} + .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;} + .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;} + div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; } + div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; } + .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;} + .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;} + .pagenum {display:inline; font-size: 70%; font-style:normal; + margin: 0; padding: 0; position: absolute; right: 1%; + text-align: right;} + pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;} + +</style> + </head> + <body> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + +Project Gutenberg's Two Penniless Princesses, by Charlotte M. Yonge + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: Two Penniless Princesses + +Author: Charlotte M. Yonge + +Release Date: December 3, 2008 [EBook #2942] +Last Updated: October 12, 2016 + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: UTF-8 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TWO PENNILESS PRINCESSES *** + + + + +Produced by Sandra Laythorpe, and David Widger + + + + + +</pre> + <p> + <br /><br /> + </p> + <h1> + TWO PENNILESS PRINCESSES + </h1> + <p> + <br /> + </p> + <h2> + By Charlotte M. Yonge + </h2> + <p> + <br /> <br /> + </p> + <hr /> + <p> + <br /> <br /> + </p> + <h3> + Contents + </h3> + <table summary="" style="margin-right: auto; margin-left: auto"> + <tr> + <td> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0001"> CHAPTER 1. DUNBAR </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0002"> CHAPTER 2. DEPARTURE </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0003"> CHAPTER 3. FALCON AND FETTERLOCK </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0004"> CHAPTER 4. ST. HELEN S </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0005"> CHAPTER 5. THE MEEK USURPER </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0006"> CHAPTER 6. THE PRICE OF A GOOSE </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0007"> CHAPTER 7. THE MINSTREL KING’S COURT </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0008"> CHAPTER 8. STINGS </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0009"> CHAPTER 9. BALCHENBURG </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0010"> CHAPTER 10. TENDER AND TRUE </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0011"> CHAPTER 11. FETTERS BROKEN </a> + </p> + <p class="toc"> + <a href="#link2HCH0012"> CHAPTER 12. SORROW ENDED </a> + </p> + </td> + </tr> + </table> + <p> + <br /> <br /> + </p> + <hr /> + <p> + <br /> <br /> <a name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <h2> + CHAPTER 1. DUNBAR + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘’Twas on a night, an evening bright + When the dew began to fa’, + Lady Margaret was walking up and down, + Looking over her castle wa’.’ +</pre> + <p> + The battlements of a castle were, in disturbed times, the only + recreation-ground of the ladies and play-place of the young people. Dunbar + Castle, standing on steep rocks above the North Sea, was not only + inaccessible on that side, but from its donjon tower commanded a + magnificent view, both of the expanse of waves, taking purple tints from + the shadows of the clouds, with here and there a sail fleeting before the + wind, and of the rugged headlands of the coast, point beyond point, the + nearer distinct, and showing the green summits, and below, the tossing + waves breaking white against the dark rocks, and the distance becoming + more and more hazy, in spite of the bright sun which made a broken path of + glory along the tossing, white-crested waters. + </p> + <p> + The wind was a keen north-east breeze, and might have been thought too + severe by any but the ‘hardy, bold, and wild’ children who were merrily + playing on the top of the donjon tower, round the staff whence fluttered + the double treasured banner with ‘the ruddy lion ramped in gold’ denoting + the presence of the King. + </p> + <p> + Three little boys, almost babies, and a little girl not much older, were + presided over by a small elder sister, who held the youngest in her lap, + and tried to amuse him with caresses and rhymes, so as to prevent his + interference with the castle-building of the others, with their small + hoard of pebbles and mussel and cockle shells. + </p> + <p> + Another maiden, the wind tossing her long chestnut-locks, uncovered, but + tied with the Scottish snood, sat on the battlement, gazing far out over + the waters, with eyes of the same tint as the hair. Even the sea-breeze + failed to give more than a slight touch of colour to her somewhat freckled + complexion; and the limbs that rested in a careless attitude on the stone + bench were long and languid, though with years and favourable + circumstances there might be a development of beauty and dignity. Her lips + were crooning at intervals a mournful old Scottish tune, sometimes only + humming, sometimes uttering its melancholy burthen, and she now and then + touched a small harp that stood by her side on the seat. + </p> + <p> + She did not turn round when a step approached, till a hand was laid on her + shoulder, when she started, and looked up into the face of another girl, + on a smaller scale, with a complexion of the lily-and-rose kind, fair hair + under her hood, with a hawk upon her wrist, and blue eyes dancing at the + surprise of her sister. + </p> + <p> + ‘Eleanor in a creel, as usual!’ she cried. + </p> + <p> + ‘I thought it was only one of the bairns,’ was the answer. + </p> + <p> + ‘They might coup over the walls for aught thou seest,’ returned the + new-comer. ‘If it were not for little Mary what would become of the poor + weans?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What will become of any of us?’ said Eleanor. ‘I was gazing out over the + sea and wishing we could drift away upon it to some land of rest.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The Glenuskie folk are going to try another land,’ said Jean. ‘I was in + the bailey-court even now playing at ball with Jamie when in comes a + lay-brother, with a letter from Sir Patrick to say that he is coming the + night to crave permission from Jamie to go with his wife to France. Annis, + as you know, is betrothed to the son of his French friends, Malcolm is to + study at the Paris University, and Davie to be in the Scottish Guards to + learn chivalry like his father. And the Leddy of Glenuskie—our + Cousin Lilian—is going with them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And she will see Margaret,’ said Eleanor. ‘Meg the dearie! Dost remember + Meg, Jeanie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Well, well do I remember her, and how she used to let us nestle in her + lap and sing to us. She sang like thee, Elleen, and was as mother-like as + Mary is to the weans, but she was much blithesomer—at least before + our father was slain.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Sweetest Meg! My whole heart leaps after her,’ cried Eleanor, with a + fervent gesture. + </p> + <p> + ‘I loved her better than Isabel, though she was not so bonnie,’ said Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘Jeanie, Jeanie,’ cried Eleanor, turning round with a vehemence strangely + contrasting with her previous language, ‘wherefore should we not go with + Glenuskie to be with Meg at Bourges?’ + </p> + <p> + Jeanie opened her blue eyes wide. + </p> + <p> + ‘Go to the French King’s Court?’ she said. + </p> + <p> + ‘To the land of chivalry and song,’ exclaimed Eleanor, ‘where they have + courts of love and poetry, and tilts and tourneys and minstrelsy, and the + sun shines as it never does in this cold bleak north; and above all there + is Margaret, dear tender Margaret, almost a queen, as a queen she will be + one day. Oh! I almost feel her embrace.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It might be well,’ said Jean, in the matter-of-fact tone of a practical + young lady; ‘mewed up in these dismal castles, we shall never get princely + husbands like our sisters. I might be Queen of Beauty, I doubt me whether + you are fair enough, Eleanor.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, that is not what I think of,’ said Eleanor. ‘It is to see our own + Margaret, and to see and hear the minstrel knights, instead of the rude + savages here, scarce one of whom knows what knighthood means!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, and they will lay hands on us and wed us one of these days,’ returned + Jean, ‘unless we vow ourselves as nuns, and I have no mind for that.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nor would a convent always guard us,’ said Eleanor; ‘these reivers do not + stick at sanctuary. Now in that happy land ladies meet with courtesy, and + there is a minstrel king like our father, Rene is his name, uncle to + Margaret’s husband. Oh! it would be a very paradise.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Let us go, let us go!’ exclaimed Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘Go!’ said Mary, who had drawn nearer to them while they spoke. ‘Whither + did ye say?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘To France—to sister Margaret and peace and sunshine,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Eh!’ said the girl, a pale fair child of twelve; ‘and what would poor + Jamie and the weans do, wanting their titties?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ye are but a bairn, Mary,’ was Jean’s answer. ‘We shall do better for + Jamie by wedding some great lords in the far country than by waiting here + at home.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And James will soon have a queen of his own to guide him,’ added Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘I’ll no quit Jamie or the weans,’ said little Mary resolutely, turning + back as the three-year-old boy elicited a squall from the eighteen-months + one. + </p> + <p> + ‘Johnnie! Johnnie! what gars ye tak’ away wee Andie’s claw? Here, my + mannie.’ + </p> + <p> + And she was kneeling on the leads, making peace over the precious crab’s + claw, which, with a few cockles and mussels, was the choicest toy of these + forlorn young Stewarts; for Stewarts they all were, though the three + youngest, the weans, as they were called, were only half-brothers to the + rest. + </p> + <p> + Nothing, in point of fact, could have been much more forlorn than the + condition of all. The father of the elder ones, James I., the flower of + the whole Stewart race, had nine years before fallen a victim to the + savage revenge and ferocity of the lawless men whom he had vainly + endeavoured to restrain, leaving an only son of six years old and six + young daughters. His wife, Joanna, once the Nightingale of Windsor, had + wreaked vengeance in so barbarous a manner as to increase the dislike to + her as an Englishwoman. Forlorn and in danger, she tried to secure a + protector by a marriage with Sir James Stewart, called the Black Knight of + Lorn; but he was unable to do much for her, and only added the feuds of + his own family to increase the general danger. The two eldest daughters, + Margaret and Isabel, were already contracted to the Dauphin and the Duke + of Brittany, and were soon sent to their new homes. The little King, the + one darling of his mother, was snatched from her, and violently + transferred from one fierce guardian to another; each regarding the + possession of his person as a sanction to tyranny. He had been introduced + to the two winsome young Douglases only as a prelude to their murder, and + every day brought tidings of some fresh violence; nay, for the second + time, a murder was perpetrated in the Queen’s own chamber. + </p> + <p> + The poor woman had never been very tender or affectionate, and had the + haughty demeanour with which the house of Somerset had thought fit to + assert their claims to royalty. The cruel slaughter of her first husband, + perhaps the only person for whom she had ever felt a softening love, had + hardened and soured her. She despised and domineered over her second + husband, and made no secret that the number of her daughters was + oppressive, and that it was hard that while the royal branch had produced, + with one exception, only useless pining maidens, her second marriage in + too quick succession should bring her sons, who could only be a burthen. + No one greatly marvelled when, a few weeks after the birth of little + Andrew, his father disappeared, though whether he had perished in some + brawl, been lost at sea, or sought foreign service as far as possible from + his queenly wife and inconvenient family, no one knew. + </p> + <p> + Not long after, the Queen, with her four daughters and the infants, had + been seized upon by a noted freebooter, Patrick Hepburn of Hailes, and + carried to Dunbar Castle, probably to serve as hostages, for they were + fairly well treated, though never allowed to go beyond the walls. The + Queen’s health had, however, been greatly shaken, the cold blasts of the + north wind withered her up, and she died in the beginning of the year + 1445. + </p> + <p> + The desolateness of the poor girls had perhaps been greater than their + grief. Poor Joanna had been exacting and tyrannical, and with no female + attendants but the old, worn-out English nurse, had made them do her all + sorts of services, which were requited with scoldings and grumblings + instead of the loving thanks which ought to have made them offices of + affection as well as duty; while the poor little boys would indeed have + fared ill if their half-sister Mary, though only twelve years old, had not + been one of those girls who are endowed from the first with tender, + motherly instincts. + </p> + <p> + Beyond providing that there was a supply of some sort of food, and that + they were confined within the walls of the Castle, Hepburn did not trouble + his head about his prisoners, and for many weeks they had no intercourse + with any one save Archie Scott, an old groom of their mother’s; Ankaret, + nurse to baby Andrew; and the seneschal and his wife, both Hepburns. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor and Jean, who had been eight and seven years old at the time of + the terrible catastrophe which had changed all their lives, had been well + taught under their father’s influence; and the former, who had inherited + much of his talent and poetical nature, had availed herself of every + scanty opportunity of feeding her imagination by book or ballad, + story-teller or minstrel; and the store of tales, songs, and fancies that + she had accumulated were not only her own chief resource but that of her + sisters, in the many long and dreary hours that they had to pass, + unbrightened save by the inextinguishable buoyancy of young creatures + together. When their mother was dying, Hepburn could not help for very + shame admitting a priest to her bedside, and allowing the clergy to + perform her obsequies in full form. This had led to a more complete + perception of the condition of the poor Princesses, just at the time when + the two worst tyrants over the young King, Crichton and Livingstone, had + fallen out, and he had been able to put himself under the guidance of his + first cousin, James Kennedy, Bishop of St. Andrews and now Chancellor of + Scotland, one of the wisest, best, and truest-hearted men in Scotland, and + imbued with the spirit of the late King. + </p> + <p> + By his management Hepburn was induced to make submission and deliver up + Dunbar Castle to the King with all its captives, and the meeting between + the brother and sisters was full of extreme delight on both sides. They + had been together very little since their father’s death, only meeting + enough to make them long for more opportunities; and the boy at fifteen + years old was beginning to weary after the home feeling of rest among + kindred, and was so happy amidst his sisters that no attempt at breaking + up the party at Dunbar had yet been made, as its situation made it a + convenient abode for the Court. Though he had never had such advantages of + education as, strangely enough, captivity had afforded to his father, he + had not been untaught, and his rapid, eager, intelligent mind had caught + at all opportunities afforded by those palace monasteries of Scotland in + which he had stayed for various periods of his vexed and stormy minority. + Good Bishop Kennedy, with whom he had now spent many months, had studied + at Paris and had passed four years at Rome, so as to be well able both to + enlarge and stimulate his notions. In Eleanor he had found a companion + delighted to share his studies, and full likewise of original fancy and of + that vein of poetry almost peculiar to Scottish women; and Jean was + equally charming for all the sports in which she could take part, while + the little ones, whom, to his credit be it spoken, he always treated as + brothers, were pleasant playthings. + </p> + <p> + His presence, with all that it involved, had made a most happy change in + the maidens’ lives; and yet there was still great dreariness, much + restraint in the presence of constant precaution against violence, much + rudeness and barbarism in the surroundings, absolute poverty in the + plenishing, a lack of all beauty save in the wild and rugged face of + northern nature, and it was hardly to be wondered at that young people, + inheritors of the cultivated instincts of James I. and of the + Plantagenets, should yearn for something beyond, especially for that sunny + southern land which report and youthful imagination made them believe an + ideal world of peace, of poetry, and of chivalry, and the loving elder + sister who seemed to them a part of that golden age when their noble and + tender-hearted father was among them. + </p> + <p> + The boy’s foot was on the turret-stairs, and he was out on the battlements—a + tall lad for his age, of the same colouring as Eleanor, and very handsome, + except for the blemish of a dark-red mark upon one cheek. + </p> + <p> + ‘How now, wee Andie?’ he exclaimed, tossing the baby boy up in his arms, + and then on the cry of ‘Johnnie too!’ ‘Me too!’ performing the same feat + with the other two, the last so boisterously that Mary screamed that ‘the + bairnie would be coupit over the crag.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What, looking out over the sea?’ he cried to his elder sisters. ‘That’s + the wrang side! Ye should look out on the other, to see Glenuskie coming + with Davie and Malcolm, so we’ll have no lack of minstrelsy and tales + to-night, that is if the doited old council will let me alone. Here, come + to the southern tower to watch for them.’ + </p> + <p> + The sisters had worked themselves to the point of eagerness where + propitious moments are disregarded, and both broke out— + </p> + <p> + ‘Glenuskie is going to Margaret. We want to go with him!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Go! Go to Margaret and leave me!’ cried James, the red spot on his face + spreading. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, Jamie, it is so dull and dreary, and folks are so fierce and rude.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That might be when that loon Hepburn had you, but now you have me, who + can take order with them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You cannot do all, Jamie,’ persisted Eleanor; ‘and we long after that + fair smooth land of peace. Lady Glenuskie would take good care of us till + we came to Margaret.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay! And ‘tis little you heed how it is with me,’ exclaimed James, ‘when + you are gone to your daffing and singing and dancing—with me that + have saved you from that reiver Hepburn.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Jamie, dear, I’ll never quit ye,’ said little Mary’s gentle voice. + </p> + <p> + He laughed. + </p> + <p> + ‘You are a leal faithful little lady, Mary; but you are no good as yet, + when Angus is speiring for my sister for his heir.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And do you trow,’ said Jean hotly, ‘that when one sister is to be a + queen, and the other is next thing to it, we are going to put up with a + raw-boned, red-haired, unmannerly Scots earl?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And do you forget who is King of Scotland, ye proud peat?’ her brother + cried in return. + </p> + <p> + ‘A braw sort of king,’ returned Jean, ‘who could not hinder his mother and + sisters from being stolen by an outlaw.’ + </p> + <p> + The pride and hot temper of the Beauforts had descended to both brother + and sister, and James lifted his hand with ‘Dare to say that again’; and + Jean was beginning ‘I dare,’ when little Annaple opportunely called, + ‘There’s a plump of spears coming over the hill.’ + </p> + <p> + There was an instant rush to watch them, James saying— + </p> + <p> + ‘The Drummond banner! Ye shall see how Glenuskie mocks at this same fine + fancy of yours’; and he ran downstairs at no kingly pace, letting the + heavy nail-studded door bang after him. + </p> + <p> + ‘He will never let us go,’ sighed Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘You worked him into one of his tempers,’ returned Eleanor. ‘You should + have broached it to him more by degrees.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And lost the chance of going with Sir Patie and his wife, and got + plighted to the red-haired Master of Angus—never see sweet Meg and + her braw court, and the tilts and tourneys, but live among murderous + caitiffs and reivers all my days,’ sobbed Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘I would not be such a fule body as to give in for a hasty word or two, + specially of Jamie’s,’ said Eleanor composedly. + </p> + <p> + ‘And gin ye bide here,’ added gentle Mary, ‘we shall be all together, and + you will have Jamie and the bairnies.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Fine consolation,’ muttered Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘Eh well,’ said Eleanor, we must go down and meet them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘This fashion!’ exclaimed Jean. ‘Look at your hair, Ellie—blown wild + about your ears like a daft woman’s, and your kirtle all over mortar and + smut. My certie, you would be a bonnie lady to be Queen of Love and Beauty + at a jousting-match.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You are no better, Jeanie,’ responded Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘That I ken full well, but I’d be shamed to show myself to knights and + lairds that gate. And see Mary and all the lave have their hands as black + as a caird’s.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Come and let Andie’s Mary wash them,’ said that little personage, picking + up fat Andrew in her arms, while he retained his beloved crab’s claw. + ‘Jeanie, would you carry Johnnie, he’s not sure-footed, over the stair? + Annaple, take Lorn’s hand over the kittle turning.’ + </p> + <p> + One chamber was allotted to the entire party and their single nurse. Being + far up in the tower, it ventured to have two windows in the massive walls, + so thick that five-and-twenty steps from the floor were needed to reach + the narrow slips of glass in a frame that could be removed at will, either + to admit the air or to be exchanged for solid wooden shutters to exclude + storms by sea or arrows and bolts by land. The lower part of the walls was + hung with very grim old tapestry, on which Holofernes’ head, going into + its bag, could just be detected; there were two great solid box-beds, two + more pallets rolled up for the day, a chest or two, a rude table, a + cross-legged chair, a few stools, and some deer and seal skins spread on + the floor completed the furniture of this ladies’ bower. There was, + unusual luxury, a chimney with a hearth and peat fire, and a cauldron on + it, with a silver and a copper basin beside it for washing purposes, never + discarded by poor Queen Joanna and her old English nurse Ankaret, who had + remained beside her through all the troubles of the stormy and barbarous + country, and, though crippled by a fall and racked with rheumatism, was + the chief comfort of the young children. She crouched at the hearth with + her spinning and her beads, and exclaimed at the tossed hair and soiled + hands and faces of her charges. + </p> + <p> + Mary brought the little ones to her to be set to rights, and the elder + girls did their best with their toilette. Princesses as they were, the + ruddy golden tresses of Eleanor and the flaxen locks of Jean and Mary were + the only ornaments that they could boast of as their own; and though there + were silken and embroidered garments of their mother’s in one of the + chests, their mourning forbade the use of them. The girls only wore the + plain black kirtles that had been brought from Haddington at the time of + the funeral, and the little boys had such homespun garments as the + shepherd lads wore. + </p> + <p> + Partly scolding, partly caressing, partly bemoaning the condition of her + young ladies, so different from the splendours of the house of Somerset, + Ankaret saw that Eleanor was as fit to be seen as circumstances would + permit; as to Jean and Mary, there was no trouble on that score. + </p> + <p> + The whole was not accomplished till a horn was sounded as an intimation + that supper was ready, at five o’clock, for the entire household, and all + made their way down—Jean first, in all the glory of her fair face + and beautiful hair; then Eleanor with little Lorn, as he was called, his + Christian name being James; then Annaple and Johnnie hand-in-hand, Mary + carrying Andrew, and lastly old Ankaret, hobbling along with her stick, + and, when out of sight, a hand on Annaple’s shoulder. In public, nothing + would have made her presume so far. The hall was a huge, vaulted, + stone-walled room, with a great fire on the wide hearth, and three long + tables—one was cross-wise, on the dais near the fire, the other two + ran the length of the hall. The upper one was furnished with tolerably + clean napery and a few silver vessels; as to the lower ones, they were in + two degrees of comparison, and the less said of the third the better. It + was for the men-at-arms and the lowest servants, whereas the second + belonged to those of the suite of the King and Chancellor, who were not of + rank to be at his table. The Lord Lion King-at-Arms was high-table + company, but he was absent, and the inferior royal pursuivant was + entertaining two of his fellows, one with the Douglas Bloody Heart, the + other with the Lindsay Lion on a black field, besides two messengers of + the different clans, who looked askance at one another. + </p> + <p> + Leaning against the wall near the window stood the young King with two or + three youths beside him, laughing and talking over three great + deer-hounds, and by the hearth were two elder men—one, a tall + dignified figure in the square cap and purple robe of a Bishop, with a + face of great wisdom and sweetness; the other, still taller, with slightly + grizzled hair and the weather-beaten countenance of a valiant and + sagacious warrior, dressed in the leathern garments usually worn under + armour. + </p> + <p> + As Jean emerged from the turret she was met and courteously greeted by Sir + Patrick Drummond and his sons, as were also her sisters, with a grace and + deference to their rank such as they hardly ever received from the nobles, + and whose very rarity made Eleanor shy and uncomfortable, even while she + was gratified and accepted it as her due. + </p> + <p> + The Bishop inclined his head and gave them a kind smile; but they had + already seen him in the morning, as he was residing in the castle. He was + the most fatherly friend and kinsman the young things knew, and though + really their first cousin, they looked to him like an uncle. He insisted + on due ceremony with them, though he had much difficulty in enforcing it, + except with those Scottish knights and nobles who, like Sir Patrick + Drummond, had served in France, and retained their French breeding. + </p> + <p> + So Jean, hawk and all, had to be handed to her seat by Sir Patrick as the + guest, Eleanor by her brother, not without a little fraternal pinch, and + Mary by the Bishop, who answered with a paternal caress to her murmured + entreaty that she might keep wee Andie on her lap and give him his brose. + </p> + <p> + It was not a sumptuous repast, the staple being a haggis, also broth with + chunks of meat and barleycorns floating in it, the meat in strings by + force of boiling. At the high table each person had a bowl, either silver + or wood, and each had a private spoon, and a dagger to serve as knife, + also a drinking-cup of various materials, from the King’s gold goblet + downwards to horns, and a bannock to eat with the brose. At the middle + table trenchers and bannocks served the purpose of plates; and at the + third there was nothing interposed between the boards of the table and the + lumps of meat from which the soup had been made. + </p> + <p> + Jean’s quick eyes soon detected more men-at-arms and with different badges + from the thyme spray of Drummond, and her brother was evidently bursting + with some communication, held back almost forcibly by the Bishop, who had + established a considerable influence over the impetuous boy, while Sir + Patrick maintained a wise and tedious political conversation about the + peace between France and England, which was to be cemented by the marriage + of the young King of England to the daughter of King Rene and the cession + of Anjou and Maine to her father. + </p> + <p> + ‘Solid dukedoms for a lassie!’ cried young James. ‘What a craven to make + such a bargain!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Scarce like his father’s son,’ returned Sir Patrick, ‘who gat the bride + with a kingdom for her tocher that these folks have well-nigh lost among + them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The saints be praised if they have.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I cannot forget, my liege, how your own sainted father loved and fought + for King Harry of Monmouth. Foe as he was, I own that I shall never look + on his like again.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I hold with you in that, Patie,’ said Bishop Kennedy; ‘and frown as you + may, my young liege, a few years with such as he would do more for you—as + it did with your blessed father—than ever we can.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I can hold mine own, I hope, without lessons from the enemy,’ said James, + holding his head high, while his ruddy locks flew back, his eyes glanced, + and the red scar on his cheek widened. ‘And is it true that you are for + going through false England, Patie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I made friends there when I spent two years there with your Grace’s + blessed father,’ returned Sir Patrick, ‘and so did my good wife. She longs + to see the lady who is now Sister Clare at St. Katharine’s in London, and + it is well not to let her and Annis brook the long sea voyage.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There, Jean! I’d brook ten sea voyages rather than hold myself beholden + to an Englishman!’ quoth James. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nevertheless, there are letters and messages that it is well to confide + to so trusty and wise-headed a knight as Glenuskie,’ returned the Bishop. + </p> + <p> + The meal over, the silver bowls were carried round with water to wash the + hands by the two young Drummonds, sons of Glenuskie, and by the King’s + pages, youths of about the same age, after which the Bishop and Sir + Patrick asked licence of the King to retire for consultation to the + Bishop’s apartment, a permission which, as may well be believed, he + granted readily, only rejoicing that he was not wanted. + </p> + <p> + The little ones were carried off by Mary and Nurse Ankaret; and the King, + his elder sisters, and the other youths of condition betook themselves, + followed by half-a-dozen great dogs, to the court, where the Drummonds + wanted to exhibit the horses procured for the journey, and James and Jean + to show the hawks that were the pride of their heart. + </p> + <p> + By and by came an Italian priest, who acted as secretary to the Bishop—a + poor little man who grew yellower and yellower, was always shivering, and + seemed to be shrivelled into growing smaller and smaller by the Scottish + winds, but who had a most keen and intelligent face. + </p> + <p> + ‘How now, Father Romuald,’ called out James. ‘Are ye come to fetch me?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Di grazia, Signor Re’, began the Italian in some fear, as the dogs + smelted his lambskin cape. ‘The Lord Bishop entreats your Majesty’s + presence.’ + </p> + <p> + His Majesty, who, by the way, never was so called by any one else, uttered + some bitter growls and grumbles, but felt forced to obey the call, taking + with him, however, his beautiful falcon on his wrist, and the two huge + deer-hounds, who he declared should be of the council if he was. + </p> + <p> + Jean and Eleanor then closed upon David and Malcolm, eagerly demanding of + them what they expected in that wonderful land to which they were going, + much against the will of young David, who was sure there would be no + hunting of deer, nor hawking for grouse, nor riding after an English + borderer or Hieland cateran—nothing, in fact, worth living for! It + would be all a-wearying with their manners and their courtesies and such + like daft woman’s gear! Why could not his father be content to let him + grow up like his fellows, rough and free and ready? + </p> + <p> + ‘And knowing nothing better—nothing beyond,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘What would you have better than the hill and the brae? To tame a horse + and fly a hawk, and couch a lance and bend a bow! That’s what a man is + made for, without fashing himself with letters and Latin and manners, no + better than a monk; but my father would always have it so!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ye’ll be thankful to him yet, Davie,’ put in his graver brother. + </p> + <p> + ‘Thankful! I shall forget all about it as soon as I am knighted, and make + you write all my letters—and few enough there will be.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And you, Malcolm!’ said Eleanor, ‘would you be content to hide within + four walls, and know nothing by your own eyes?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No indeed, cousin,’ replied the lad; ‘I long for the fair churches and + cloisters and the learned men and books that my father tells of. My mother + says that her brother, that I am named for, yearned to make this a land of + peace and godliness, and to turn these high spirits to God’s glory instead + of man’s strife and feud, and how it might have been done save for the + slaying of your noble father—Saints rest him!—which broke mine + uncle’s heart, so that he died on his way home from pilgrimage. She hopes + to pray at his tomb that I may tread in his steps, and be a blessing and + not a curse to the land we love.’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor was silent, seeing for the first time that there might be higher + aims than escaping from dulness, strife, and peril; whilst Jean cried— + </p> + <p> + ‘’Tis the titles and jousts, the knights and ladies that I care for—men + that know what fair chivalry means, and make knightly vows to dare all + sorts of foes for a lady’s sake.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘As if any lass was worth it,’ said David contemptuously. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, that’s what you are! That’s what it is to live in this savage realm,’ + returned Jean. + </p> + <p> + At this moment, however, Brother Romuald was again seen advancing, and + this time with a request for the presence of the ladies Jean and Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Could James be relenting on better advice?’ they asked one another as + they went. + </p> + <p> + ‘More likely,’ said Jean, with a sigh, amounting to a groan, ‘it is only + to hear that we are made over, like a couple of kine, to some ruffianly + reivers, who will beat a princess as soon as a scullion.’ + </p> + <p> + They reached the chamber in time. Though the Bishop slept there it also + served for a council chamber; and as he carried his chapel and household + furniture about with him, it was a good deal more civilised-looking than + even the princesses’ room. Large folding screens, worked with tapestry, + representing the lives of the saints, shut off the part used as an oratory + and that which served as a bedchamber, where indeed the good man slept on + a rush mat on the floor. There were a table and several chairs and stools, + all capable of being folded up for transport. The young King occupied a + large chair of state, in which he twisted himself in a very undignified + manner; the Bishop-Chancellor sat beside him, with the Great Seal of + Scotland and some writing materials, parchments, and letters before him, + and Sir Patrick came forward to receive and seat the young ladies, and + then remained standing—as few of his rank in Scotland would have + done on their account. + </p> + <p> + ‘Well, lassies,’ began the King, ‘here’s lads enow for you. There’s the + Master of Angus, as ye ken—‘(Jean tossed her head)—‘moreover, + auld Crawford wants one of you for his son.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The Tyger Earl,’ gasped Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘And with Stirling for your portion, the modest fellow,’ added James. ‘Ay, + and that’s not all. There’s the MacAlpin threats me with all his clan if I + dinna give you to him; and Mackay is not behindhand, but will come down + with pibroch and braidsword and five hundred caterans to pay his court to + you, and make short work of all others. My certie, sisters seem but a + cause for threats from reivers, though maybe they would not be so uncivil + if once they had you.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, Jamie! oh! dear holy Father,’ cried Eleanor, turning from the King to + the Bishop, ‘do not, for mercy’s sake, give me over to one of those + ruffians.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘They are coming, Eleanor,’ said James, with a boy’s love of terrifying; + ‘the MacAlpin and Mackay are both coming down after you, and we shall have + a fight like the Clan Chattan and Clan Kay. There’s for the demoiselle who + craved for knights to break lances for her!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Knights indeed! Highland thieves,’ said Jean; ‘and ‘tis for what tocher + they may force from you, James, not for her face.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You are right there, my puir bairn,’ said the Bishop. ‘These men—save + perhaps the young Master of Angus—only seek your hands as a pretext + for demands from your brother, and for spuilzie and robbery among + themselves. And I for my part would never counsel his Grace to yield the + lambs to the wolves, even to save himself.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No, indeed,’ broke in the King; we may not have them fighting down here, + though it would be rare sport to look on, if you were not to be the prize. + So my Lord Bishop here trows, and I am of the same mind, that the only + safety is that the birds should be flown, and that you should have your + wish and be away the morn, with Patie of Glenuskie here, since he will + take the charge of two such silly lasses.’ + </p> + <p> + The sudden granting of their wish took the maidens’ breath away. They + looked from one to the other without a word; and the Bishop, in more + courtly language, explained that amid all these contending parties he + could not but judge it wiser to put the King’s two marriageable sisters + out of reach, either of a violent abduction, or of being the cause of a + savage contest, in either case ending in demands that would be either + impossible or mischievous for the Crown to grant, and moreover in misery + for themselves. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick added something courteous about the honour of the charge. + </p> + <p> + ‘So soon!’ gasped Jean; ‘are we really to go the morn?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘With morning light, if it be possible, fair ladies,’ said Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay,’ said James, ‘then will we take Mary and the weans to the nunnery in + St. Mary’s Wynd, where none will dare to molest them, and I shall go on to + St. Andrews or Stirling, as may seem fittest; while we leave old Seneschal + Peter to keep the castle gates shut. If the Hielanders come, they’ll find + the nut too hard for them to crack, and the kernel gone, so you’d best + burn no more daylight, maidens, but busk ye, as women will.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, Jamie, to speak so lightly of parting!’ sighed Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Come—no fule greeting, now you have your will,’ hastily said James, + who could hardly bear it himself. + </p> + <p> + ‘Our gear!’ faltered Jeanie, with consternation at their ill-furnished + wardrobes. + </p> + <p> + ‘For that,’ said the Bishop, ‘you must leave the supply till you are over + the Border, when the Lady Glenuskie will see to your appearing as nigh as + may be as befits the daughters of Scotland among your English kin.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But we have not a mark between us,’ said Jean, ‘and all my mother’s + jewels are pledged to the Lombards.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There are moneys falling due to the Crown,’ said the Bishop, ‘and I can + advance enow to Sir Patrick to provide the gear and horses.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And my gude wife’s royal kin are my guests till they win to their + sister,’ added Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + And so it was settled. It was an evening of bustle and a night of + wakefulness. There were floods of tears poured out by and over sweet + little Mary and good old Ankaret, not to speak of those which James + scorned to shed. Had a sudden stop been put to the journey, perhaps, + Eleanor would have been relieved but Jean sorely disappointed. + </p> + <p> + It was further decided that Father Romuald should accompany the party, + both to assist in negotiations with Henry VI. and Cardinal Beaufort, and + to avail himself of the opportunity of returning to his native land, fa + north, and to show cause to the Pope for erecting St. Andrews into an + archiepiscopal see, instead of leaving Scotland under the primacy of York. + </p> + <p> + Hawk and harp were all the properties the princesses-errant took with + them; but Jean, as her old nurse sometimes declared, loved Skywing better + than all the weans, and Elleen’s small travelling-harp was all that she + owned of her father’s—except the spirit that loved it. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 2. DEPARTURE + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘I bowed my pride, + A horse-boy in his train to ride.’—SCOTT. +</pre> + <p> + The Lady of Glenuskie, as she was commonly called, was a near kinswoman of + the Royal House, Lilias Stewart, a grand-daughter of King Robert II., and + thus first cousin to the late King. Her brother, Malcolm Stewart, had + resigned to her the little barony of Glenuskie upon his embracing the life + of a priest, and her becoming the wife of Sir Patrick Drummond, the son of + his former guardian. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick had served in France in the Scotch troop who came to the + assistance of the Dauphin, until he was taken prisoner by his native + monarch, James I., then present with the army of Henry V. He had then + spent two years at Windsor, in attendance upon that prince, until both + were set at liberty by the treaty made by Cardinal Beaufort. In the + meantime, his betrothed, Lilias, being in danger at home, had been + bestowed in the household of the Countess of Warwick, where she had been + much with an admirable and saintly foreign lady, Esclairmonde de + Luxembourg, who had taken refuge from the dissensions of her own vexed + country among the charitable sisterhood of St. Katharine in the Docks in + London. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick and his lady had thus enjoyed far more training in the general + European civilisation than usually fell to the lot of their countrymen; + and they had moreover imbibed much of the spirit of that admirable King, + whose aims at improvement, religious, moral, and political, were so + piteously cut short by his assassination. During the nine miserable years + that had ensued it had not been possible, even in conjunction with Bishop + Kennedy, to afford any efficient support or protection to the young King + and his mother, and it had been as much as Sir Patrick could do to protect + his own lands and vassals, and do his best to bring up his children to + godly, honourable, and chivalrous ways; but amid all the evil around he + had decided that it was well-nigh impossible to train them to courage + without ruffianism, or to prevent them from being tainted by the + prevailing standard. Even among the clergy and monastic orders the type + was very low, in spite of the endeavours of Bishop Kennedy, who had not + yet been able to found his university at St. Andrews; and it had been + agreed between him and Sir Patrick that young Malcolm Drummond, a devout + and scholarly lad of earnest aspiration, should be trained at the Paris + University, and perhaps visit Padua and Bologna in preparation for that + foundation, which, save for that cruel Eastern’s E’en, would have been + commenced by the uncle whose name he bore. + </p> + <p> + The daughter had likewise been promised in her babyhood to the Sire de + Terreforte, a knight of Auvergne, who had come on a mission to the Scotch + Court in the golden days of the reign of James I., and being an old + companion-in-arms of Sir Patrick, had desired to unite the families in the + person of his infant son Olivier and of Annis Drummond. + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond had ever since been preparing her little daughter and her + wardrobe. The whole was in a good state of forwardness; but it must be + confessed that she was somewhat taken aback when she beheld two young + ladies riding up the glen with her husband, sons, and their escort; and + found, on descending to welcome them, that they were neither more nor less + than the two eldest unmarried princesses of Scotland. + </p> + <p> + ‘And Dame Lilias,’ proceeded her knight, ‘you must busk and boune you to + be in the saddle betimes the morn, and put Tweed between these puir lasses + and their foes—or shall I say their ower well wishers?’ + </p> + <p> + The ladies of Scotland lived to receive startling intelligence, and Lady + Drummond’s kind heart was moved by the two forlorn, weary-looking figures, + with traces of tears on their cheeks. She kissed them respectfully, + conducted them to the guest-chamber, which was many advances beyond their + room at Dunbar in comfort, and presently left her own two daughters, Annis + and Lilias, and their nurse, to take care of them, since they seemed to + have neither mails nor attendants of their own, while she sought out her + husband, as he was being disarmed by his sons, to understand what was to + be done. + </p> + <p> + He told her briefly of the danger and perplexity in which the presence of + the two poor young princesses might involve themselves, their brother, and + the kingdom itself, by exciting the greed, jealousy, and emulation of the + untamed nobles and Highland chiefs, who would try to gain them, both as an + excuse for exactions from the King and out of jealousy of one another. To + take them out of reach was the only ready means of preventing mischief, + and the Bishop of St. Andrews had besought Sir Patrick to undertake the + charge. + </p> + <p> + ‘We are bound to do all we can for their father’s daughters,’ Dame Lilias + owned, ‘alike as our King and the best friend that ever we had, or my dear + brother Malcolm, Heaven rest them both! But have they no servants, no + plenishing?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That must we provide,’ said Sir Patrick. ‘We must be their servants, + Dame. Our lasses must lend them what is fitting, till we come where I can + make use of this, which my good Lord of St. Andrews gave me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What is it, Patie? Not the red gold?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh no! I have heard of the like. Ye ken Morini, as they call him, the + Lombard goldsmith in the Canongate? Weel, for sums that the Bishop will + pay to Morini, sums owing, he says, by himself to the Crown—though I + shrewdly suspect ‘tis the other way, gude man!—then the Lombard’s + fellows in York, London, or Paris, or Bourges will, on seeing this bit + bond, supply us up to the tune of a hundred crowns. Thou look’st mazed, + Lily, but I have known the like before. ‘Tis no great sum, but mayhap the + maidens’ English kin will do somewhat for them before they win to their + sister.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I would not have them beholden to the English,’ said Dame Lilias, not + forgetting that she was a Stewart. + </p> + <p> + Her husband perhaps scarcely understood the change made in the whole + aspect of the journey to her. Not only had she to hurry her preparations + for the early start, but instead of travelling as the mistress of the + party, she and her daughter would, in appearance at least, be the mere + appendages of the two princesses, wait upon them, give them the foremost + place, supply their present needs from what was provided for themselves, + and it was quite possible have likewise to control girlish petulance and + inexperience in the strange lands where her charges must appear at their + very best, to do honour to their birth and their country. + </p> + <p> + But the loyal woman made up her mind without a word of complaint after the + first shock, and though a busy night was not the best preparation for a + day’s journey, she never lay down; nor indeed did her namesake daughter, + who was to be left at a Priory on their way, there to decide whether she + had a vocation to be a nun. + </p> + <p> + So effectually did she bestir herself that by six o’clock the next morning + the various packages were rolled up for bestowal on the sumpter horses, + and the goods to be left at home locked up in chests, and committed to the + charge of the trusty seneschal and his wife; a meal, to be taken in haste, + was spread on the table in the hall, to be swallowed while the little + rough ponies were being laden. + </p> + <p> + Mass was to be heard at the first halting-place, the Benedictine nunnery + of Trefontana on Lammermuir, where Lilias Drummond was to be left, to be + passed on, when occasion served, to the Sisterhood at Edinburgh. + </p> + <p> + The fresh morning breezes over the world of heather brightened the cheeks + and the spirits of the two sisters; the first wrench of parting was over + with them, and they found themselves treated with much more observance + than usual, though they did not know that the horses they were riding had + been trained for the special use of the Lady of Glenuskie and her daughter + Annis upon the journey. + </p> + <p> + They rode on gaily, Jean with her inseparable falcon Skywing, Eleanor with + her father’s harp bestowed behind her—she would trust it to no one + else. They were squired by their two cousins, David and Malcolm, who, in + spite of David’s murmurs, felt the exhilaration of the future as much as + they did, as they coursed over the heather, David with two great + greyhounds with majestic heads at his side, Finn and Finvola, as they were + called. + </p> + <p> + The graver and sadder ones of the party, father, mother, and the two young + sisters, rode farther back, the father issuing directions to the + seneschal, who accompanied them thus far, and the mother watching over the + two fair young girls, whose hearts were heavy in the probability that they + would never meet again, for how should a Scottish Benedictine nun and the + wife of a French seigneur ever come together? nor would there be any + possibility of correspondence to bridge over the gulf. + </p> + <p> + The nunnery was strong, but not with the strength of secular buildings, + for, except when a tempting heiress had taken refuge there, convents were + respected even by the rudest men. + </p> + <p> + Numerous unkempt and barely-clothed figures were coming away from the + gates, a pilgrim or two with brown gown, broad hat, and scallop shell, the + morning’s dole being just over; but a few, some on crutches, some with + heads or limbs bound up, were waiting for their turn of the + sister-infirmarer’s care. The pennon of the Drummond had already been + recognised, and the gate-ward readily admitted the party, since the house + of Glenuskie were well known as pious benefactors to the Church. + </p> + <p> + They were just in time for a mass which a pilgrim priest was about to say, + and they were all admitted to the small nave of the little chapel, beyond + which a screen shut off the choir of nuns. After this the ladies were + received into the refectory to break their fast, the men folk being served + in an outside building for the purpose. It was not sumptuous fare, chiefly + consisting of barley bannocks and very salt and dry fish, with some thin + and sour ale; and David’s attention was a good deal taken up by a + man-at-arms who seemed to have attached himself to the party, but whom he + did not know, and who held a little aloof from the rest—keeping his + visor down while eating and drinking, in a somewhat suspicious manner, as + though to avoid observation. + </p> + <p> + Just as David had resolved to point this person out to his father, Sir + Patrick was summoned to speak to the Lady Prioress. Therefore the youth + thought it incumbent upon him to deal with the matter, and advancing + towards the stranger, said, ‘Good fellow, thou art none of our following. + How, now!’ for a pair of gray eyes looked up with recognition in them, and + a low voice whispered, ‘Davie Drummond, keep my secret till we be across + the Border.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Geordie, what means this?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I canna let her gang! I ken that she scorns me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That proud peat Jean?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Whist! whist! She scorns me, and the King scarce lent a lug to my + father’s gude offer, so that he can scarce keep the peace with their pride + and upsettingness. But I love her, Davie, the mere sight of her is + sunshine, and wha kens but in the stour of this journey I may have the + chance of standing by her and defending her, and showing what a leal + Scot’s heart can do? Or if not, if I may not win her, I shall still be in + sight of her blessed blue een!’ + </p> + <p> + David whistled his perplexity. ‘The Yerl,’ said he, ‘doth he ken?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I trow not! He thinks me at Tantallon, watching for the raid the Mackays + are threatening—little guessing the bird would be flown.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘How cam’ ye to guess that same, which was, so far as I know, only decided + two days syne?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Our pursuivant was to bear a letter to the King, and I garred him let me + bear him company as one of his grooms, so that I might delight mine eyes + with the sight of her.’ + </p> + <p> + David laughed. His time was not come, and this love and admiration for his + young cousin was absurd in his eyes. ‘For a young bit lassie,’ he said; + ‘gin it had been a knight! But what will your father say to mine?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I will write to him when I am well over the Border,’ said Geordie, ‘and + gin he kens that your father had no hand in it he will deem no ill-will. + Nor could he harm you if he did.’ + </p> + <p> + David did not feel entirely satisfied, on one side of his mind as to his + own loyalty to his father, or Geordie’s to ‘the Yerl,’ and yet there was + something diverting to the enterprising mind in the stolen expedition; and + the fellow-feeling which results in honour to contemporaries made him + promise not to betray the young man and to shield him from notice as best + he might. With Geordie’s motive he had no sympathy, having had too many + childish squabbles with his cousin for her to be in his eyes a sublime + Princess Joanna, but only a masterful Jeanie. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick, absorbed in orders to his seneschal, did not observe the + addition to his party; and as David acted as his squire, and had been seen + talking to the young man, no further demur was made until the time when + the home party turned to ride back to Glenuskie, and Sir Patrick made a + roll-call of his followers, picked men who could fairly be trusted not to + embroil the company by excesses or imprudences in England or France. + </p> + <p> + Besides himself, his wife, sons and daughters, and the two princesses, the + party consisted of Christian, female attendant for the ladies, the wife of + Andrew of the Cleugh, an elderly, well-seasoned man-at-arms, to whom the + banner was entrusted; Dandie their son, a stalwart youth of two or + three-and-twenty, who, under his father, was in charge of the horses; and + six lances besides. Sir Patrick following the French fashion, which gave + to each lance two grooms, armed likewise, and a horse-boy. For each of the + family there was likewise a spare palfrey, with a servant in charge, and + one beast of burthen, but these last were to be freshly hired with their + attendants at each stage. + </p> + <p> + Geordie, used to more tumultuous and irregular gatherings, where any man + with a good horse and serviceable weapons was welcome to join the raid, + had not reckoned on such a review of the party as was made by the old + warrior accustomed to more regular warfare, and who made each of his eight + lances—namely, the two Andrew Drummonds, Jock of the Glen, Jockie of + Braeside, Willie and Norman Armstrong, Wattie Wudspurs, and Tam Telfer—answer + to their names, and show up their three followers. + </p> + <p> + ‘And who is yon lad in bright steel?’ Sir Patrick asked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Master Davie kens, sir,’ responded old Andrew. David, being called, + explained that he was a leal lad called Geordie, whom he had seen in + Edinburgh, and who wished to join them, go to France, and see the world + under Sir Patrick’s guidance, and that he would be at his own charges. + ‘And I’ll be answerable for him, sir,’ concluded the lad. + </p> + <p> + ‘Answer! Ha! ha! What for, eh? That he is a long-legged lad like your ain + self. What more? Come, call him up!’ + </p> + <p> + The stranger had no choice save to obey, and came up on a strong white + mare, which old Andrew scanned, and muttered to his son, ‘The Mearns breed—did + he come honestly by it?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Up with your beaver, young man,’ said Sir Patrick peremptorily; ‘no man + rides with me whose face I have not seen.’ + </p> + <p> + A face not handsome and thoroughly Scottish was disclosed, with keen + intelligence in the gray eyes, and a certain air of offended dignity, yet + self-control, in the close-shut mouth. The cheeks were sunburnt and + freckled, a tawny down of young manhood was on the long upper lip, and the + short-cut hair was red; but there was an intelligent and trustworthy + expression in the countenance, and the tall figure sat on horseback with + the upright ease of one well trained. + </p> + <p> + ‘Soh!’ said Sir Patrick, looking him over, ‘how ca’ they you, lad?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Geordie o’ the Red Peel,’ he answered. + </p> + <p> + ‘That’s a by-name,’ said the knight sternly; ‘I must have the full name of + any man who rides with me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘George Douglas, then, if nothing short of that will content you!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Are ye sib to the Earl?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, sir, and have rid in his company.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Whose word am I to take for that?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Mine, sir, a word that none has ever doubted,’ said the youth boldly. ‘By + that your son kens me.’ + </p> + <p> + David here vouched for having seen the young man in the Angus following, + when he had accompanied his father in the last riding of the Scots + Parliament at Edinburgh; and this so far satisfied Sir Patrick that he + consented to receive the stranger into his company, but only on condition + of an oath of absolute obedience so long as he remained in the troop. + </p> + <p> + David could see that this had not been reckoned on by the high-spirited + Master of Angus; and indeed obedience, save to the head of the name, was + so little a Scottish virtue that Sir Patrick was by no means unprepared + for reluctance. + </p> + <p> + ‘I give thee thy choice, laddie,’ he said, not unkindly; ‘best make up + your mind while thou art still in thine own country, and can win back + home. In England and France I can have no stragglers nor loons like to + help themselves, nor give cause for a fray to bring shame on the haill + troop in lands that are none too friendly. A raw carle like thyself, or + even these lads of mine, might give offence unwittingly, and then I’d have + to give thee up to the laws, or to stand by thee to the peril of all, and + of the ladies themselves. So there’s nothing for it but strict keeping to + orders of myself and Andrew Drummond of the Cleugh, who kens as well as I + do what sorts to be done in these strange lands. Wilt thou so bind + thyself, or shall we part while yet there is time?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir, I will,’ said the young man, ‘I will plight my word to obey you, and + faithfully, so long as I ride under your banner in foreign parts—provided + such oath be not binding within this realm of Scotland, nor against my + lealty to the head of my name.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nor do I ask it of thee,’ returned Sir Patrick heartily, but regarding + him more attentively; ‘these are the scruples of a true man. Hast thou any + following?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Only a boy to lead my horse to grass,’ replied George, giving a peculiar + whistle, which brought to his side a shock-headed, barefooted lad, in a + shepherd’s tartan and little else, but with limbs as active as a wild + deer, and an eye twinkling and alert. + </p> + <p> + ‘He shall be put in better trim ere the English pock-puddings see him,’ + said Douglas, looking at him, perhaps for the first time, as something + unsuited to that orderly company. + </p> + <p> + ‘That is thine own affair,’ said Sir Patrick. ‘Mine is that he should + comport himself as becomes one of my troop. What’s his name?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ringan Raefoot,’ replied Geordie Sir Patrick began to put the oath of + obedience to him, but the boy cried out— + </p> + <p> + ‘I’ll ne’er swear to any save my lawful lord, the Yerl of Angus, and my + lord the Master.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hist, Ringan,’ interposed Geordie. ‘Sir, I will answer for his faith to + me, and so long as he is leal to me he will be the same to thee; but I + doubt whether it be expedient to compel him.’ + </p> + <p> + So did Sir Patrick, and he said— + </p> + <p> + ‘Then be it so, I trust to his faith to thee. Only remembering that if he + plunder or brawl, I may have to leave him hanging on the next bush.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And if he doth, the Red Douglas will ken the reason why,’ quoth Ringan, + with head aloft. + </p> + <p> + It was thought well to turn a deaf ear to this observation. Indeed, + Geordie’s effort was to elude observation, and to keep his uncouth + follower from attracting it. Ringan was not singular in running along with + bare feet. Other ‘bonnie boys,’ as the ballad has it, trotted along by the + side of the horses to which they were attached in the like fashion, though + they had hose and shoon slung over their shoulders, to be donned on + entering the good town of Berwick-upon-Tweed. + </p> + <p> + Not without sounding of bugle and sending out a pursuivant to examine into + the intentions and authorisation of the party, were they admitted, Jean + and Eleanor riding first, with the pursuivant proclaiming—‘Place, + place for the high and mighty princesses of Scotland.’ + </p> + <p> + It was an inconvenient ceremony for poor Sir Patrick, who had to hand over + to the pursuivant, in the name of the princesses, a ring from his own + finger. Largesse he could not attempt, but the proud spirit of himself and + his train could not but be chafed at the expectant faces of the crowd, and + the intuitive certainty that ‘Beggarly Scotch’ was in every disappointed + mind. + </p> + <p> + And this was but a foretaste of what the two royal maidens’ presence would + probably entail throughout the journey. His wife added to this care + uneasiness as to the deportment of her three maidens. Of Annis she had not + much fear, but she suspected Jean and Eleanor of being as wild and untamed + as hares, and she much doubted whether any counsels might not offend their + dignity, and drive them into some strange behaviour that the good people + of Berwick would never forget. + </p> + <p> + They rode in, however, very upright and stately, with an air of taking + possession of the place on their brother’s behalf; and Jean bowed with a + certain haughty grace to the deputy-warden who came out to receive them, + Eleanor keeping her eye upon Jean and imitating her in everything. For + Eleanor, though sometimes the most eager, and most apt to commit herself + by hasty words and speeches, seemed now to be daunted by the strangeness + of all around, and to commit herself to the leading of her sister, though + so little her junior. + </p> + <p> + She was very silent all through the supper spread for them in the hall of + the castle, while Jean exchanged conversation with their host upon Iceland + hawks and wolf and deer hounds, as if she had been a young lady keeping a + splendid court all her life, instead of a poverty-stricken prisoner in + castle after castle. + </p> + <p> + ‘Jeanie,’ whispered Eleanor, as they lay down on their bed together, + ‘didst mark the tall laddie that was about to seat himself at the high + table and frowned when the steward motioned him down?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What’s that to me? An ill-nurtured carle,’ said Jean; ‘I marvel Sir Patie + brooks him in his meinie!’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor was a little in awe of Jeanie in this mood, and said no more, but + Annis, who slept on a pallet at their feet, heard all, and guessed more as + to the strange young squire. + </p> + <p> + Fain would she and Eleanor have discussed the situation, but Jean’s blue + eyes glanced heedfully and defiantly at them, and, moreover, the young + gentleman in question, after that one error, effaced himself, and was + forgotten for the time in the novelty of the scenes around. + </p> + <p> + The sub-warden of Berwick, mindful of his charge to obviate all occasions + of strife, insisted on sending a knight and half-a-dozen men to escort the + Scottish travellers as far as Durham. David Drummond and the young ladies + murmured to one another their disgust that the English pock-pudding should + not suppose Scots able to keep their heads with their own hands; but, as + Jean sagely observed, ‘No doubt he would not wish them to have occasion to + hurt any of the English, nor Jamie to have to call them to account.’ + </p> + <p> + This same old knight consorted with Sir Patrick, Dame Lilias, and Father + Romuald, and kept a sharp eye on the little party, allowing no straggling + on any pretence, and as Sir Patrick enforced the command, all were obliged + to obey, in spite of chafing; and the scowls of the English Borderers, + with the scant courtesy vouchsafed by these sturdy spirits, proved the + wisdom of the precaution. + </p> + <p> + At Durham they were hospitably entertained in the absence of the Bishop. + The splendour of the cathedral and its adjuncts much impressed Lady + Drummond, as it had done a score of years previously; but, though Malcolm + ventured to share her admiration, Jean was far above allowing that she + could be astonished at anything in England. In fact, she regarded the + stately towers of St. Cuthbert as so much stolen family property which + ‘Jamie’ would one day regain; and all the other young people followed + suit. David even made all the observations his own sense of honour and the + eyes of his hosts would permit, with a view to a future surprise. The + escort of Sir Patrick was asked to York by a Canon who had to journey + thither, and was anxious for protection from the outlaws—who had + begun to renew the doings of Robin Hood under the laxer rule of the young + Henry VI, though things were expected to be better since the young Duke of + York had returned from France. + </p> + <p> + Perhaps this arrangement was again a precaution for the preservation of + peace, and at York there was a splendid entertainment by Cardinal Kemp; + but all the ‘subtleties’ and wonders—stags’ heads in their horns, + peacocks in their pride, jellies with whole romances depicted in them, + could not reconcile the young Scots to the presumption of the Archbishop + reckoning Scotland into his province. Durham was at once too monastic and + too military to have afforded much opportunity for recruiting the + princesses’ wardrobe; but York was the resort of the merchants of + Flanders, and Christie was sent in quest of them and their wares, for + truly the black serge kirtles and shepherd’s tartan screens that had made + the journey from Dunbar were in no condition to do honour to royal + damsels. + </p> + <p> + Jean was in raptures with the graceful veils depending from the horned + headgear, worn, she was told, by the Duchess of Burgundy; but Eleanor wept + at the idea of obscuring the snood of a Scottish maiden, and would not + hear of resigning it. + </p> + <p> + ‘I feel as Elleen no more,’ she said, ‘but a mere Flanders popinjay. It + has changed my ain self upon me, as well as the country.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Thou shouldst have been born in a hovel!’ returned Jean, raising her + proud little head. ‘I feel more than ever what I am—a true + princess!’ + </p> + <p> + And she looked it, with beauty enhanced by the rich attire which only made + Eleanor embarrassed and uncomfortable. + </p> + <p> + Malcolm, the more scrupulous of the Drummond brothers, begged of George + Douglas, when at Durham, to write to his father and declare himself to Sir + Patrick, but the youth would do neither. He did not think himself + sufficiently out of reach, and, besides, the very sight of a pen was + abhorrent to him. There was something pleasing to him in the liberty of a + kind of volunteer attached to the expedition, and he would not give it up. + Nor was he without some wild idea of winning Jean’s notice by some gallant + exploit on her behalf before she knew him for the object of her prejudice, + the Master of Angus. As to Sir Patrick, he was far too busy trying to + compose Border quarrels, and gleaning information about the Gloucester and + Beaufort parties at Court, to have any attention to spare for the young + man riding in his suite with the barefooted lad ever at his stirrup. + </p> + <p> + Geordie never attempted to secure better accommodation than the other + lances; he groomed his steed himself, with a little assistance from + Ringan, and slept in the straw of its bed, with the lad curled up at his + feet; the only difference observable between him and the rest being that + he always groomed himself every night and morning as carefully as the + horse, a ceremony they thought entirely needless. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 3. FALCON AND FETTERLOCK + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Ours is the sky + Where at what fowl we please our hawk shall fly.’ + —T. Randolph. +</pre> + <p> + Beyond York that species of convoy, which ranged between protection and + supervision, entirely ceased; the Scottish party moved on their own wa + oftener through heath, rock, and moor, for England was not yet thickly + inhabited, though there was no lack of hostels or of convents to receive + them on this the great road to the North, and to its many shrines for + pilgrimage. + </p> + <p> + Perhaps Sir Patrick relaxed a little of his vigilance, since the good + behaviour of his troop had won his confidence, and they were less likely + to be regarded as invaders than by the inhabitants of the district nearer + their own frontier. + </p> + <p> + Hawking and coursing within bounds had been permitted by both the Knight + of Berwick and the Canon of Durham on the wide northern moors; but Sir + Patrick, on starting in the morning of the day when they were entering + Northamptonshire, had given a caution that sport was not free in the more + frequented parts of England, and that hound must not be loosed nor hawk + flown without special permission from the lord of the manor. + </p> + <p> + He was, however, riding in the rear of the rest, up a narrow lane leading + uphill, anxiously discussing with Father Romuald the expediency of seeking + hospitality from any of the great lords whose castles might be within + reach before he had full information of the present state of factions at + the Court, when suddenly his son Malcolm came riding back, pushing up + hastily. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir! father!’ he cried, ‘there’s wud wark ahead, there’s a flight of unco + big birds on before, and Lady Jean’s hawk is awa’ after them, and Jeanie’s + awa’ after the hawk, and Geordie Red Peel is awa’ after Jean, and Davie’s + awa’ after Geordie; and there’s the blast of an English bugle, and my + mither sent me for you to redd the fray!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Time, indeed!’ said Sir Patrick with a sigh, and, setting spurs to his + horse, he soon was beyond the end of the lane, on an open heath, where + some of his troop were drawn up round his banner, almost forcibly kept + back by Dame Lilias and the elder Andrew. He could not stop for + explanation from them, indeed his wife only waved him forward towards a + confused group some hundred yards farther off, where he could see a number + of his own men, and, too plainly, long bows and coats of Lincoln green, + and he only hoped, as he galloped onward, that they belonged to outlaws + and not to rangers. Too soon he saw that his hope was vain; there were ten + or twelve stout archers with the white rosette of York in their bonnets, + the falcon and fetterlock on their sleeves, and the Plantagenet + quarterings on their breasts. In the midst was a dead bustard, also an + Englishman sitting up, with his head bleeding; Jean was on foot, with her + dagger-knife in one hand, and holding fast to her breast her beloved hawk, + whose jesses were, however, grasped by one of the foresters. Geordie of + the Red Peel stood with his sword at his feet, glaring angrily round, + while Sir Patrick, pausing, could hear his son David’s voice in loud tones— + </p> + <p> + ‘I tell you this lady is a royal princess! Yes, she is’—as there was + a kind of scoff—‘and we are bound on a mission to your King from the + King of Scots, and woe to him that touches a feather of ours.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That may be,’ said the one who seemed chief among the English, ‘but that + gives no licence to fly at the Duke’s game, nor slay his foresters for + doing their duty. If we let the lady go, hawk and man must have their + necks wrung, after forest laws.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And I tell thee,’ cried Davie, ‘that this is a noble gentleman of + Scotland, and that we will fight for him to the death.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Let it alone, Davie,’ said George. ‘No scathe shall come to the lady + through me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Save him, Davie! save Skywing!’ screamed Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘To the rescue—a Drummond,’ shouted David; but his father pushed his + horse forward, just as the men in green, were in the act of stringing, all + at the same moment, their bows, as tall as themselves. They were not so + many but that his escort might have overpowered them, but only with heavy + loss, and the fact of such a fight would have been most disastrous. + </p> + <p> + ‘What means this, sirs?’ he exclaimed, in a tone of authority, waving back + his own men; and his dignified air, as well as the banner with which + Andrew followed him, evidently took effect on the foresters, who perhaps + had not believed the young men. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir Patie, my hawk!’ entreated Jean. ‘She did but pounce on yon unco + ugsome bird, and these bloodthirsty grasping loons would have wrung her + neck.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She took her knife to me,’ growled the wounded man, who had risen to his + feet, and showed bleeding fingers. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, for meddling with a royal falcon,’ broke in Jean. ‘’Tis thou, false + loon, whose craig should be raxed.’ + </p> + <p> + Happily this was an unknown tongue to the foresters, and Sir Patrick + gravely silenced her. + </p> + <p> + ‘Whist, lady, brawls consort not with your rank. Gang back doucely to my + leddy.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But Skywing! he has her jesses,’ said the girl, but in a lower tone, as + though rebuked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir ranger,’ said Sir Patrick courteously, ‘I trust you will let the + young demoiselle have her hawk. It was loosed in ignorance and + heedlessness, no doubt, but I trow it is the rule in England, as + elsewhere, that ladies of the blood royal are not bound by forest laws.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir, if we had known,’ said the ranger, who was evidently of gentle + blood, as he took his foot off the jesses, and Jean now allowed David to + remount her. + </p> + <p> + ‘But my Lord Duke is very heedful of his bustards, and when Roger there + went to seize the bird, my young lady was over-ready with her knife.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Who would not be for thee, my bird?’ murmured Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘And yonder big fellow came plunging down and up with his sword—so + as he was nigh on being the death of poor Roger again for doing his duty. + If such be the ways of you Scots, sir, they be not English ways under my + Lord Duke, that is to say, and if I let the lady and her hawk go, forest + law must have its due on the young man there—I must have him up to + Fotheringay to abide the Duke’s pleasure.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Heed me not, Sir Patrick!’ exclaimed Geordie. ‘I would not have those of + your meinie brought into jeopardy for my cause.’ + </p> + <p> + David was plucking his father’s mantle to suggest who George was, which in + fact Sir Patrick might suspect enough to be conscious of the full + awkwardness of the position, and to abandon the youth was impossible. + Though it was not likely that the Duke of York would hang him if aware of + his rank, he might be detained as a hostage or put to heavy ransom, or he + might never be brought to the Duke’s presence at all, but be put to death + by some truculent underling, incredulous of a Scotsman’s tale, if indeed + he were not too proud to tell it. Anyway, Sir Patrick felt bound to stand + by him. + </p> + <p> + ‘Good sir,’ said he to the forester, ‘will it content thee if we all go + with thee to thy Duke? The two Scottish princesses are of his kin, and + near of blood to King Henry, whom they are about to visit at Windsor. I am + on a mission thither on affairs of state, but I shall be willing to make + my excuses to him for any misdemeanour committed on his lands by my + followers.’ + </p> + <p> + The forester was consenting, when George cried— + </p> + <p> + ‘I’ll have no hindrance to your journey on my account, Sir Patrick. Let me + answer for myself.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Foolish laddie,’ said the knight. ‘Father Romuald and I were only now + conferring as to paying the Duke a visit on our way. Sir forester, we + shall be beholden to you for guiding us.’ + </p> + <p> + He further inquired into the ranger’s hurts, and salved them with a piece + of gold, while David thought proper to observe to George— + </p> + <p> + ‘So much for thy devoir to thy princess! It was for Skywing’s craig she + cared, never thine.’ + </p> + <p> + George turned a deaf ear to the insinuation. He was allowed free hands and + his own horse, which was perhaps well for the Englishmen, for Ringan + Raefoot, running by his stirrup, showed him a long knife, and said with a + grin— + </p> + <p> + ‘Ready for the first who daurs to lay hands on the Master! Gin I could + have come up in time, the loon had never risen from the ground.’ + </p> + <p> + George endeavoured in vain to represent how much worse this would have + made their condition. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick, joining the ladies, informed them of the necessity of turning + aside to Fotheringay, which he had done not very willingly, being ignorant + of the character of the Duke of York, except as one of the war party + against France and Scotland, whereas the Beauforts were for peace. As a + vigorous governor of Normandy, he had not commended him self to one whose + sympathies were French. Lady Drummond, however, remembered that his wife, + Cicely Nevil, the Rose of Raby, was younger sister to that Ralf Nevil who + had married the friend of her youth, Alice Montagu, now Countess of + Salisbury in her own right. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick did not let Jean escape a rebuke. + </p> + <p> + ‘So, lady, you see what perils to brave men you maids can cause by a + little heedlessness.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I never asked Geordie to put his finger in,’ returned Jean saucily. ‘I + could have brought off Skywing for myself without such a clamjamfrie after + me.’ + </p> + <p> + But Eleanor and Annis agreed that it was as good as a ballad, and ought to + be sung in one, only Jean would have to figure as the ‘dour lassie.’ For + she continued to aver, by turns, that Geordie need never have meddled, and + that of course it was his bounden duty to stand by his King’s sister, and + that she owed him no thanks. If he were hanged for it he had run his craig + into the noose. + </p> + <p> + So she tossed her proud head, and toyed with her falcon, as all rode on + their way to Fotheringay, with Geordie in the midst of the rangers. + </p> + <p> + It was so many years since there had been serious war in England, that the + castles of the interior were far less of fortresses than of magnificent + abodes for the baronage, who had just then attained their fullest + splendour. It may be observed that the Wars of the Roses were for the most + part fought out in battles, not by sieges. Thus Fotheringay had spread out + into a huge pile, which crowned the hill above, with a strong inner court + and lofty donjon tower indeed, and with mighty walls, but with buildings + for retainers all round, reaching down to the beautiful newly-built + octagon-towered church; and with a great park stretching for miles, for + all kinds of sport. + </p> + <p> + ‘All this enclosed! Yet they make sic a wark about their bustards, as they + ca’ them,’ muttered Jean. + </p> + <p> + The forester had sent a messenger forward to inform the Duke of York of + his capture. The consequence was that the cavalcade had no sooner crossed + the first drawbridge under the great gateway of the castle, where the + banner of Plantagenet was displayed, than before it were seen a goodly + company, in the glittering and gorgeous robes of the fifteenth century. + </p> + <p> + There was no doubt of welcome. Foremost was a graceful, slenderly-made + gentleman about thirty years old, in rich azure and gold, who doffed his + cap of maintenance, turned up with fur, and with long ends, and, bowing + low, declared himself delighted that the princesses of Scotland, his good + cousins, should honour his poor dwelling. + </p> + <p> + He gave his hand to assist Jean to alight, and an equally gorgeous but + much younger gentleman in the same manner waited on Eleanor. A tall, + grizzled, sunburnt figure received Lady Drummond with recognition on both + sides, and the words, ‘My wife is fain to see you, my honoured lady: is + this your daughter?’ with a sign to a tall youth, who took Annis from her + horse. Dame Lilias heard with joy that the Countess of Salisbury was + actually in the castle, and in a few moments more she was in the great + hall, in the arms of the sweet Countess Alice of her youth, who, + middle-aged as she was, with all her youthful impulsiveness had not waited + for the grand and formal greeting bestowed on the princesses by her + stately young sister-in-law, the Duchess of York. + </p> + <p> + There seemed to be a perfect crowd of richly-dressed nobles, ladies, + children; and though the Lady Joanna held her head up in full state, and + kept her eye on her sister to make her do the same, their bewilderment was + great; and when they had been conducted to a splendid chamber, within that + allotted to the Drummond ladies, tapestry-hung, and with silver toilette + apparatus, to prepare for supper, Jean dropped upon a high-backed chair, + and insisted that Dame Lilias should explain to her exactly who each one + was. + </p> + <p> + ‘That slight, dark-eyed carle who took me off my horse was the Duke of + York, of course,’ said she. ‘My certie, a bonnie Scot would make short + work of him, bones and all! And it would scarce be worth while to give a + clout to the sickly lad that took Elleen down.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hush, Jean,’ said Eleanor; ‘some one called him King! Was he King Harry + himself?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh no,’ said Dame Lilias, smiling; ‘only King Harry of the Isle of Wight—a + bit place about the bigness of Arran; but it pleased the English King to + crown him and give him a ring, and bestow on him the realm in a kind of + sport. He is, in sooth, Harry Beauchamp, Earl of Warwick, and was bred up + as the King’s chief comrade and playfellow.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And what brings him here?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘So far as I can yet understand, the family and kin have gathered for the + marriage of his sister, the Lady Anne—the red-cheeked maiden in the + rose-coloured kirtle—to the young Sir Richard Nevil, the same who + gave his hand to thee, Annis—the son of my Lord of Salisbury.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That was the old knight who led thee in, mother,’ said Annis. ‘Did you + say he was brother to the Duchess?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Even so. There were fifteen or twenty Nevils of Raby—he was one of + the eldest, she one of the youngest. Their mother was a Beaufort, aunt to + yours.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, I shall never unravel them!’ exclaimed Eleanor, spreading out her + hands in bewilderment. + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond laughed, having come to the time of life when ladies enjoy + genealogies. + </p> + <p> + ‘It will be enough,’ she said, ‘to remember that almost all are, like + yourselves, grandchildren or great-grandchildren to King Edward of + Windsor.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean, however, wanted to know which were nearest to herself, and which + were noblest. The first question Lady Drummond said she could hardly + answer; perhaps the Earl of Salisbury and the Duchess, but the Duke was + certainly noblest by birth, having a double descent from King Edward, and + in the male line. + </p> + <p> + ‘Was not his father put to death by this King’s father?’ asked Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, the Earl of Cambridge, for a foul plot. I have heard my Lord of + Salisbury speak of it; but this young man was of tender years, and King + Harry of Monmouth did not bear malice, but let him succeed to the dukedom + when his uncle was killed in the Battle of Agincourt.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘They have not spirit here to keep up a feud,’ said Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘My good brother—ay, and your father, Jeanie—were wont to say + they were too Christian to hand on a feud,’ observed Dame Lilias, at which + Jean tossed her head, and said— + </p> + <p> + ‘That may suit such a carpet-knight as yonder Duke. He is not so tall as + Elleen there, nor as his own Duchess.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I do not like the Duchess,’ said Annis; ‘she looks as if she scorned the + very ground she walks on.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She is wondrous bonnie, though,’ said Eleanor; ‘and so was the bairnie by + her side.’ + </p> + <p> + In some degree Jean changed her opinion of the Duke, in consequence, + perhaps, of the very marked attention that he showed her when the supper + was spread. She had never been so made to feel what it was to be at once a + king’s daughter and a beauty; and at the most magnificent banquet she had + ever known. + </p> + <p> + Durham had afforded a great advance on Scottish festivities; but in the + absence of its Prince Bishop, another Nevil, it had lacked much of what + was to be found at Fotheringay in the full blossoming of the splendours of + the princely nobility of England, just ere the decimation that they were + to perpetrate on one another. + </p> + <p> + The hall itself was vast, and newly finished in the rich culmination of + Gothic work, with a fan tracery-vaulted roof, a triumph of architecture, + each stalactite glowing with a shield or a badge of England, France, + Mortimer, and Nevil—lion or lily, falcon and fetterlock, white rose + and dun cow, all and many others—likewise shining in the stained + glass of the great windows. + </p> + <p> + The high table was loaded with gold and silver plate, and Venice glasses + even more precious; there were carpets under the feet of the nobler + guests, and even the second and third tables were spread with more + richness and refinement than ever the sisters of James II had known in + their native land. In a gallery above, the Duke’s musicians and the + choristers of his chapel were ready to enliven the meal; and as the chief + guest, the Lady Joanna of Scotland was handed to her place by the Duke of + York, who, as she now perceived, though small in stature, was eminently + handsome and graceful, and conversed with her, not as a mere child, but as + a fair lady of full years. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor, who sat on his other hand beside the Earl of Salisbury, was + rather provoked with her sister for never asking after the fate of her + champion; but was reassured by seeing his red head towering among the + numerous squires and other retainers of the second rank. It certainly was + not his proper place, but it was plain that he was not in disgrace; and in + fact the whole affair had been treated as a mere pardonable blunder of the + rangers. The superior one was sitting next to the young Scot, making good + cheer with him. Grand as the whole seemed to the travellers, it was not an + exceptional banquet; indeed, the Duchess apologised for its simplicity, + since she had been taken at unawares, evidently considering it as the + ordinary family meal. There was ample provision, served up in by no means + an unrefined manner, even to the multitudinous servants and retainers of + the various trains; and beyond, on the steps and in the court, were a + swarm of pilgrims, friars, poor, and beggars of all kinds, waiting for the + fragments. + </p> + <p> + It was a wet evening, and when the tables were drawn the guests devoted + themselves to various amusements. Lord Salisbury challenged Sir Patrick to + a game at chess, Lady Salisbury and Dame Lilias wished for nothing better + than to converse over old times at Middleham Castle; but the younger + people began with dancing, the Duke, who was only thirty years old, + leading out the elder Scottish princess, and the young King of the Isle of + Wight the stately and beautiful Duchess Cicely. Eleanor, who knew she did + not excel in anything that required grace, and was, besides, a good deal + fatigued, would fain have excused herself when paired with the young + Richard Nevil; but there was a masterful look about him that somewhat + daunted her, and she obeyed his summons, though without acquitting herself + with anything approaching to the dexterity of her sister, who, with quite + as little practice as herself, danced well—by quickness of eye and + foot, and that natural elegance of movement which belongs to symmetry. + </p> + <p> + The dance was a wreathing in and out of the couples, including all of rank + to dance together, and growing more and more animated, till excitement + took the place of weariness; and Eleanor’s pale cheeks were flushed, her + eyes glowing, when the Duchess’s signal closed the dance. + </p> + <p> + Music was then called for, and several of the princely company sang to the + lute; Jean, pleased to show there was something in which her sister + excelled, and gratified at some recollections that floated up of her + father’s skill in minstrelsy, insisted on sending for Eleanor’s harp. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, Jean, not now; I canna,’ murmured Eleanor, who had been sitting with + fixed eyes, as though in a dream. + </p> + <p> + But the Duke and other nobles came and pressed her, and Jean whispered to + her not to show herself a fule body, and disgrace herself before the + English, setting the harp before her and attending to the strings. + Eleanor’s fingers then played over them in a dreamy, fitful way, that made + the old Earl raise his head and say— + </p> + <p> + ‘That twang carries me back to King Harry’s tent, and the good old time + when an Englishman’s sword was respected.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘’Tis the very harp,’ said Sir Patrick; ‘ay, and the very tune—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Come, Elleen, begin. What gars thee loiter in that doited way?’ insisted + Jean. ‘Come, “Up atween.”’ + </p> + <p> + And, led by her sister in spite of herself, almost, as it were, without + volition, Eleanor’s sweet pathetic voice sang— + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Up atween yon twa hill-sides, lass, + Where I and my true love wont to be, + A’ the warld shall never ken, lass, + What my true love said to me. + + ‘Owre muckle blinking blindeth the ee, lass, + Owre muckle thinking changeth the mind, + Sair is the life I’ve led for thee, lass, + Farewell warld, for it’s a’ at an end.’ +</pre> + <p> + Her voice had been giving way through the last verse, and in the final + line, with a helpless wail of the harp, she hid her face, and sank back + with a strange choked agony. + </p> + <p> + ‘Why, Elleen! Elleen, how now?’ cried Jean. ‘Cousin Lilias, come!’ + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond was already at her side, and the Duchess and Lady Salisbury + proffering essences and cordials, the gentlemen offering support; but in a + moment or two Eleanor recovered enough to cling to Lady Drummond, + muttering— + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, take me awa’, take me awa’!’ + </p> + <p> + And hushing the scolding which Jean was commencing by way of bracing, and + rejecting all the kind offers of service, Dame Lilias led the girl away, + leaving Jean to make excuses and explanations about her sister being but + ‘silly’ since they had lost their mother, and the tune minding her of home + and of her father. + </p> + <p> + When, with only Annis following, the chambers had been reached, Eleanor + let herself sink on a cushion, hiding her face against her friend, and + sobbing hysterically— + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, take me awa’, take me awa’! It’s all blood and horror!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My bairnie, my dearie! You are over-weary—‘tis but a dreamy fancy. + Look up! All is safe; none can harm you here.’ + </p> + <p> + With soothings, and with some of the wine on the table, Lady Drummond + succeeded in calming the girl, and, with Annis’s assistance, she undressed + her and placed her in the bed. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, do not gang! Leave me not,’ she entreated. And as the lady sat by + her, holding her hand, she spoke, ‘It was all dim before me as the music + played, and—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Thou wast sair forefaughten, dearie.’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor went on— + </p> + <p> + ‘And then as I touched mine harp, all, all seemed to swim in a mist of + blood and horror. There was the old Earl and the young bridegroom, and + many and many more of them, with gaping wounds and deathly faces—all + but the young King of the Isle of Wight and his shroud, his shroud, Cousin + Lily, it was up to his breast; and the ladies’ faces that were so blithe, + they were all weeping, ghastly, and writhen; and they were whirling round + a great sea of blood right in the middle of the hall, and I could—I + could bear it no longer.’ + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond controlled herself, and for the sake both of the sobbing + princess and of her own shuddering daughter said that this terrible vision + came of the fatigue of the day, and the exhaustion and excitement that had + followed. She also knew that on poor Eleanor that fearful Eastern’s Eve + had left an indelible impression, recurring in any state of weakness or + fever. She scarcely marvelled at the strange and frightful fancies, except + that she believed enough in second-sight to be concerned at the mention of + the shroud enfolding the young Beauchamp, who bore the fanciful title of + the King of the Isle of Wight. + </p> + <p> + For the present, however, she applied herself to the comforting of Eleanor + with tender words and murmured prayers, and never left her till she had + slept and wakened again, her full self, upon Jean coming up to bed at nine + o’clock—a very late hour—escorted by sundry of the ladies to + inquire for the patient. + </p> + <p> + Jean was still excited, but she was, with all her faults, very fond of her + sister, and obeyed Lady Drummond in being as quiet as possible. She seemed + to take it as a matter of course that Elleen should have her strange + whims. + </p> + <p> + ‘Mother used to beat her for them,’ she said, ‘but Nurse Ankaret said that + made her worse, and we kept them secret as much as we could. To think of + her having them before all that English folk! But she will be all right + the morn.’ + </p> + <p> + This proved true; after the night’s rest Eleanor rose in the morning as if + nothing had disturbed her, and met her hosts as if no visions had hung + around them. It was well, for Sir Patrick had accepted the invitation + courteously given by the Duke of York to join the great cavalcade with + which he, with his brothers-in-law, the Earl of Salisbury and Bishop of + Durham, and the Earl of Warwick, alias the King of the Isle of Wight, were + on their way to the Parliament that was summoned anent the King’s + marriage. The unwilling knights of the shire and burgesses of Northampton + who would have to assist in the money grant had asked his protection; and + all were to start early on the Monday—for Sunday was carefully + observed as a holiday, and the whole party in all their splendours + attended high mass in the beautiful church. + </p> + <p> + After time had been given for the ensuing meal, all the yeomen and young + men of the neighbourhood came up to the great outer court of the castle, + where there was ample space for sports and military exercises, shooting + with the long and cross bow, riding at the quintain and the like, in + competitions with the grooms and men-at-arms attached to the retinue of + the various great men; and the wives, daughters, and sweethearts came up + to watch them. For the most successful there were prizes of leathern + coats, bows, knives, and the like, and refreshments of barley-bread, beef, + and very small beer, served round with a liberal hand by the troops of + servants bearing the falcon and fetterlock badge, and all was done not + merely in sport but very much in earnest, in the hope on the part of the + Duke, and all who were esteemed patriotic, that these youths might serve + in retaining at least, if not in recovering, the English conquests. + </p> + <p> + Those of gentle blood abstained from their warlike exercises on this day + of the week, but they looked on from the broad walk in the thickness of + the massive walls; the Duke with his two beautiful little boys by his + side, the young Earls of March and Rutland, handsome fair children, in + whom the hereditary blue eyes and fair complexion of the Plantagenets + recurred, and who bade fair to surpass their father in stature. Their + mother was by right and custom to distribute the prizes, but she always + disliked doing so, and either excused herself, or reached them out with + the ungracious demeanour that had won for her the muttered name of ‘Proud + Cis’. On this day she had avoided the task on the plea of the occupations + caused by her approaching journey, and the Duke put in her place his elder + boy and his little cousin, Lady Anne Beauchamp, the child of the young + King of the Isle of Wight—a short-lived little delicate being, but + very fair and pretty, so that the two children together upon a stone + chair, cushioned with red velvet, were like a fairy king and queen, and + there was many a murmur of admiration, and ‘Bless their little hearts’ or + ‘their sweet faces,’ as Anne’s dainty fingers handled the prizes, big bows + or knives, arrows or belts, and Edward had a smile and appropriate speech + for each, such as ‘Shoot at a Frenchman’s breast next time, Bob’; ‘There’s + a knife to cut up the deer with, Will,’ and the like amenities, at which + his father nodded, well pleased to see the arts of popularity coming to + him by nature. Sir Patrick watched with grave eyes, as he thought of his + beloved sovereign’s desire to see his people thus practised in arms + without peril of feud and violence to one another. + </p> + <p> + Jean looked on, eager to see some of the Scots of their own escort excel + the English pock-puddings, but though Dandie and two or three more + contended, the habits were too unfamiliar for them to win any great + distinction, and George Douglas did not come forward; the competition was + not for men of gentle blood, and success would have brought him forward in + a manner it was desirable to avoid. There was a good deal of merry talk + between Jean and the hosts, enemies though she regarded them. The Duke of + York was evidently much struck with her beauty and liveliness, and he + asked Sir Patrick in private whether there were any betrothal or contract + in consequence of which he was taking her to France. + </p> + <p> + ‘None,’ said Sir Patrick, ‘it is merely to be with her sister, the + Dauphiness.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Then,’ said young Richard Nevil, who was standing by him, and seemed to + have instigated the question, ‘there would be no hindrance supposing she + struck the King’s fancy.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The King is contracted,’ said Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘Half contracted! but to the beggarly daughter of a Frenchman who calls + himself king of half-a-dozen realms without an acre in any of them. It is + not gone so far but that it might be thrown over if he had sense and + spirit not to be led by the nose by the Cardinal and Suffolk.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hush-hush, Dick! this is dangerous matter,’ said the Duke, and Sir + Patrick added— + </p> + <p> + ‘These ladies are nieces to the Cardinal.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That is well, and it would win the more readily consent—even though + Suffolk and his shameful peace were thrown over,’ eagerly said the future + king-maker. + </p> + <p> + ‘Gloucester would be willing,’ added the Duke. ‘He loved the damsel’s + father, and hateth the French alliance.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I spoke with her,’ added Nevil, ‘and, red-hot little Scot as she is, she + only lacks an English wedlock to make her as truly English, which this + wench of Anjou can never be.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She would give our meek King just the spring and force he needs,’ said + the Duke; ‘but thou wilt hold thy peace, Sir Knight, and let no whisper + reach the women-folk.’ + </p> + <p> + This Sir Patrick readily promised. He was considerably tickled by the idea + of negotiating such an important affair for his young King and his + protegee, feeling that the benefit to Scotland might outweigh any qualms + as to the disappointment to the French allies. Besides, if King Henry of + Windsor should think proper to fall in love with her, he could not help + it; he had not brought her away from home or to England with any such + purpose; he had only to stand by and let things take their course, so long + as the safety and honour of her, her brother, and the kingdom were secure. + So reasoned the canny Scot, but he held his tongue to his Lilias. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 4. ST. HELEN S + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘I thought King Henry had resembled thee, + In courage, courtship, and proportion: + But all his mind is bent to holiness, + To number Ave-Maries on his beads: + His champions are the prophets and apostles; + His weapons, holy saws of sacred writ.’ + King Henry VI. +</pre> + <p> + George Douglas’s chivalrous venture in defence of the falcon of his + lady-love had certainly not done much for him hitherto, as Davie observed. + The Lady Joanna, as every one now called her, took it as only the bounden + duty and natural service of one of her suite, and would have cared little + for his suffering for it personally, except so far as it concerned her own + dignity, which she understood much better than she had done in Scotland, + where she was only one of ‘the lassies,’ an encumbrance to every one. + </p> + <p> + The York retainers had dropped all idea of visiting his offence upon + Douglas when they found that he had acted in the service of an honoured + guest of their lord, but they did not look with much favour on him or on + any other of the Scottish troop, whom their master enjoined them to treat + as guests and comrades. + </p> + <p> + The uniting of so many suites of the mighty nobles of the fifteenth + century formed quite a little army, amounting to some two or three hundred + horsemen, mostly armed, and well appointed, with their masters’ badges on + their sleeves,—falcon and fetterlock, dun cow, bear and ragged staff + and the cross of Durham, while all likewise wore in their caps the white + rose. Waggons with household furniture and kitchen needments had been sent + in advance with the numerous ‘black guard,’ and a provision of cattle for + slaughter accompanied these, since it was one of the considerate acts that + already had won affection to Richard of York that, unlike many of the + great nobles, he always avoided as much as possible letting his train be + oppressive to the country-people. + </p> + <p> + David Drummond had been seeing that all his father’s troop were duly + provided with the Drummond badge, the thyme, which was requisite as + showing them accepted of the Duke of York’s company, but as George and his + follower had never submitted to wear it, he was somewhat surprised to find + the gray blossom prominent in George’s steel-guarded cap, and to hear him + saying— + </p> + <p> + ‘Don it, Ringan, as thou wouldst obey me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘His father’s son is not his own father,’ said Ringan sulkily. + </p> + <p> + ‘Then tak’ thy choice of wearing it, or winning hame as thou canst—most + like hanging on the nearest oak.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And I’d gey liefer than demean myself in the Drummond thyme!’ replied + Ringan, half turning away. ‘But then what would come of Gray Meg wi’ only + the Master to see till her,’ muttered he, caressing the mare’s neck. + ‘Weel, aweel, sir’—and he held out his hand for the despised spray. + </p> + <p> + ‘Is yon thy wild callant, Geordie?’ said David in some surprise, for + Ringan was not only provided with a pony, but his thatch of tow-like hair + had been trimmed and covered with a barret cap, and his leathern coat and + leggings were like those of the other horse-boys. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay,’ said George, ‘this is no place to be ower kenspeckle.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I was coming to ask,’ said David, ‘if thou wouldst not own thyself to my + father, and take thy proper place ere ganging farther south. It irks me to + see some of the best blood in Scotland among the grooms.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It must irk thee still, Davie,’ returned George. ‘These English folk + might not thole to see my father’s son in their hands without winning + something out of him, and I saw by what passed the other day that thou and + thy father would stand by me, hap what hap, and I’ll never embroil him and + peril the lady by my freak.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My father kens pretty well wha is riding in his companie,’ said David. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, but he is not bound to ken.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And thou winna write to the Yerl, as ye said ye would when ye were ower + the Border? There’s a clerk o’ the Bishop of Durham ganging back, and my + father is writing letters that he will send forward to the King, and thou + couldst get a scart o’ the pen to thy father.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And what wad be thought of a puir man-at-arms sending letters to the + Yerl?’ said George. ‘Na, na; I may write when we win to France, a friendly + land, but while we are in England, the loons shall make naething out of my + father’s son.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Weel, gang thine ain gait, and an unco strange one it is,’ said David. ‘I + marvel what thou count’st on gaining by it!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The sicht of her at least,’ said George. ‘Nay, she needed a stout hand + once, she may need it again.’ + </p> + <p> + Whereat David waved his hands in a sort of contemptuous wonder. + </p> + <p> + ‘If it were the Duchess of York now!’ he said. ‘She is far bonnier and + even prouder, gin that be what tak’s your fancy! And as to our Jeanie, + they are all cockering her up till she’ll no be content with a king. I + doot me if the Paip himself wad be good enough for her!’ + </p> + <p> + It was true that the brilliant and lively Lady Joanna was in high favour + with the princely gallants of the cavalcade. The only member of the party + at all equal to her in beauty was the Duchess of York, who travelled in a + whirlicote with her younger children and her ladies, and at the + halting-places never relaxed the stiff dignity with which she treated + every one. Eleanor did indeed accompany her sister, but she had not Jean’s + quick power of repartee, and she often answered at haphazard, and was not + understood when she did reply; nor had she Jean’s beauty, so that in the + opinion of most of the young nobles she was but a raw, almost dumb, + Scotswoman, and was left to herself as much as courtesy permitted, except + by the young King of the Isle of Wight, a gentle, poetical personage, in + somewhat delicate health, with tastes that made him the chosen companion + of the scholarly King Henry. He could repeat a great deal of Chaucer’s + poetry by heart, the chief way in which people could as yet enjoy books, + and there was an interchange between them of “Blind Harry” and of the + “Canterbury Tales”, as they rode side by side, sometimes making their + companions laugh, and wonder that the youthful queen was not jealous. Dame + Lilias found her congenial companion in the Countess Alice of Salisbury, + who could talk with her of that golden age of the two kings, Henry and + James, of her brother Malcolm, and of Esclairmonde de Luxembourg, now + Sister Clare, whom they hoped soon to see in the sisterhood of St. + Katharine’s. + </p> + <p> + ‘Hers hath been the happy course, the blessed dedication,’ said Countess + Alice. + </p> + <p> + ‘We have both been blessed too, thanks to the saints,’ returned Lilias. + </p> + <p> + ‘That is indeed sooth,’ replied the other lady. ‘My lord hath ever been + most good to me, and I have had joy of my sons. Yet there is much that my + mind forbodes and shrinks back from in dread, as I watch my son Richard’s + overmastering spirit.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The Cardinal and the Duke of Gloucester have long been at strife, as we + heard,’ said Lady Drummond, ‘but sure that will be appeased now that the + Cardinal is an old man and your King come to years of discretion.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The King is a sweet youth, a very saint already,’ replied the Countess, + ‘but I misdoubt whether he have the stout heart and strong hand of his + father, and he is set on peace.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Peace is to be followed,’ said Lilias, amazed at the tone in which her + friend mentioned it. + </p> + <p> + ‘Peace at home! Ay, but peace at home is only to be had by war abroad. + Peace abroad without honour only leaves these fiery spirits to fume, and + fly at one another’s throats, or at those who wrought it. My mind misgives + me, mine old friend, lest wrangling lead to blows. I had rather see my + Richard spurring against the French than against his cousins of Somerset, + and while they advance themselves and claim to be nearer in blood to the + King than our good host of York, so long will there be cause of + bitterness.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Our kindly host seems to wish evil to no man.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, he is content enough, but my sister his wife, and alas! my son, + cannot let him forget that after the Duke of Gloucester he is highest in + the direct male line to King Edward of Windsor, and in the female line + stands nearer than this present King.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘In Scotland he would not forget that his father suffered for that very + cause.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, Lilias, thou hast seen enow of what such blood-feuds work in Scotland + to know how much I dread and how I pray they may never awaken here. The + blessed King Harry of Monmouth kept them down by the strong hand, while he + won all hearts to himself. It is my prayer that his young son may do the + like, and that my Lord of York be not fretted out of his peaceful loyalty + by the Somerset “outrecuidance”, and above all that my own son be not the + make-bate; but Richard is proud and fiery, and I fear—I greatly + fear, what may be in store for us.’ + </p> + <p> + Lilias thought of Eleanor’s vision, but kept silence respecting it. + </p> + <p> + Forerunners had been sent on by the Duke of York to announce his coming, + and who were in his company; and on the last stage these returned, + bringing with them a couple of knights and of clerks on the part of the + Cardinal of Winchester to welcome his great-nieces, whom he claimed as his + guests. + </p> + <p> + ‘I had hoped that the ladies of Scotland would honour my poor house,’ said + the Duke. + </p> + <p> + ‘The Lord Cardinal deems it thus more fitting,’ said the portly priest who + acted as Beaufort’s secretary, and who spoke with an authority that chafed + the Duke. + </p> + <p> + Richard Nevil rode up to him and muttered—‘He hath divined our + purpose, and means to cross it.’ + </p> + <p> + The clerk, however, spoke with Sir Patrick, and in a manner took + possession of the young ladies. They were riding between walled courts, + substantially built, with intervals of fields and woods, or sometimes + indeed of morass; for London was still an island in the middle of swamps, + with the great causeways of the old Roman times leading to it. The spire + of St. Paul’s and the square keep of the Tower had been pointed out to + them, and Jean exclaimed— + </p> + <p> + ‘My certie, it is a braw toon!’ + </p> + <p> + But Eleanor, on her side, exclaimed— + </p> + <p> + ‘’Tis but a flat! Mine eye wearies for the sea; ay, and for Arthur’s Seat + and the Castle! Oh, I wadna gie Embro’ for forty of sic toons!’ + </p> + <p> + Perhaps Jean had guessed enough to make her look on London with an eye of + possession, for her answer was— + </p> + <p> + ‘Hear till her; and she was the first to cry out upon Embro’ for a place + of reivers and land-loupers, and to want to leave it.’ + </p> + <p> + There was so much that was new and wonderful that the sisters pursued the + question no further. They saw the masts of the shipping in the Thames, and + what seemed to them a throng of church towers and spires; while, nearer, + the road began to be full of market-folk, the women in hoods and mantles + and short petticoats, the men in long frocks, such as their Saxon + forefathers had worn, driving the rough ponies or donkeys that had brought + in their produce. There were begging friars in cowl and frock, and + beggars, not friars, with crutch and bowl; there were gleemen and tumbling + women, solid tradesfolk going out to the country farms they loved, troops + of ‘prentices on their way to practice with the bow or cudgel, and parties + of gaily-coloured nobles, knights, squires, and burgesses, coming, like + their own party, to the meeting of Parliament. + </p> + <p> + There were continual greetings, the Duke of York showing himself most + markedly courteous to all, his dark head being almost continuously + uncovered, and bending to his saddle-bow in response to the salutations + that met him; and friendly inquiries and answers being often exchanged. + The Earl of Salisbury and his son were almost equally courteous; but in + the midst of all the interest of these greetings, soon after entering the + city at Bishopsgate, the clerk caused the two Scottish sisters to draw up + at an arched gateway in a solid-looking wall, saying that it was here that + my Lord Cardinal wished his royal kinswomen to be received, at the Priory + of St. Helen’s. A hooded lay-sister looked out at a wicket, and on his + speaking to her, proceeded to unbar the great gates, while the Duke of + York took leave in a more than kindly manner, declaring that they would + meet again, and that he knew ‘My Lady of St. Helen’s would make them good + cheer.’ + </p> + <p> + Indeed, he himself and the King of Wight rode into the outer court, and + lifted the two ladies down from horseback, at the inner gate, beyond which + they might not go. Jean, crossed now for the first time since she had left + home, was in tears of vexation, and could hardly control her voice to + respond to his words, muttering— + </p> + <p> + ‘As if I looked for this. Beshrew the old priest!’ + </p> + <p> + None but female attendants could be admitted. Sir Patrick, with his sons + and the rest of the train, was to be lodged at the great palace of the + Bishop of Winchester at Southwark, and as he came up to take leave of + Jean, she said, with a stamp of her foot and a clench of her hand— + </p> + <p> + ‘Let my uncle know that I am no cloister-bird to be mewed up here. I + demand to be with the friends I have made, and who have bidden me.’ + </p> + <p> + Shrewd Sir Patrick smiled a little as he said— + </p> + <p> + ‘I will tell the Lord Cardinal what you say, lady; but methinks you will + find that submission to him with a good grace carries you farther here + than does ill-humour.’ + </p> + <p> + He said something of the same kind to his wife as he took leave of her, + well knowing who were predominant with the King, and who were in + opposition, the only link being the King of Wight, or rather Earl of + Warwick, who, as the son of Henry’s guardian, had been bred up in the + closest intimacy with the monarch, and, indeed, had been invested with his + fantastic sovereignty that he might be treated as a brother and on an + equality. + </p> + <p> + Jean, however, remained very angry and discontented. After her neglected + and oppressed younger days, the courtesy and admiration she had received + for the last ten days had the effect of making her like a spoilt child; + and when they entered the inner cloistered court within, and were met by + the Lady Prioress, at the head of all her sisters in black dresses, she + hardly vouchsafed an inclination of the head in reply to the graceful and + courtly welcome with which the princesses, nieces to the great Cardinal, + were received. Eleanor, usually in the background, was left in surprise + and confusion to stammer out thanks in broad Scotch, seconded by Lady + Drummond, who could make herself far more intelligible to these + south-country ears. + </p> + <p> + There was a beautiful cloister, a double walk with clustered columns + running down the centre and a vaulted roof, and with a fountain in the + midst of the quadrangle. There was a chapel on one side, the buildings of + the Priory on the others. It was only a Priory, for the parent Abbey was + in the country; but the Prioress was a noble lady of the house of + Stafford, a small personage as to stature, but thoroughly alert and + business-like, and, in fact, the moving spring, not only of the actual + house, but of the parent Abbey, manager of the property it possessed in + the city, and of all its monastic politics. + </p> + <p> + Without apparent offence, she observed that no doubt the ladies were + weary, and that Sister Mabel should conduct them to the guest-chamber. + Accordingly one of the black figures led the way, and as soon as they were + beyond ear-shot there were observations that would not have gratified + Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘The ill-nurtured Scots!’ cried one young nun. ‘’Tis ever the way with + them,’ returned a much older one. ‘I mind when one was captive in my + father’s castle who was a mere clown, and drank up the water that was + meant to wash his fingers after meat. The guest-chamber will need a + cleaning after they are gone!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Methinks it was less lack of manners than lack of temper,’ said the + Prioress. ‘She hath the Beaufort face and the Beaufort spirit.’ + </p> + <p> + The chapel bell began to ring, and the black veils and white filed in long + procession to the pointed doorway, while the two Scottish damsels, with + Lady Drummond, her daughter, and Christie, were conducted to three + chambers looking out on the one side on the cloistered court, on the other + over a choicely-kept garden, walled in, but planted with trees shading the + turf walks. The rooms were, as Sister Mabel explained with some + complacency, reserved for the lodging of the noble ladies who came to + London as guests of my Lord Cardinal, or with petitions to the King; and + certainly there was nothing of asceticism about them; but they were an + advance even on those at Fotheringay. St. Helena discovering the Cross was + carved over the ample chimney, and the hangings were of Spanish leather, + with all the wondrous history of Santiago’s relics, including the miracle + of the cock and hen, embossed and gilt upon them. There was a Venetian + mirror, in which the ladies saw more of themselves than they had ever done + before, and with exquisite work around; there were carved chests inlaid + with ivory, and cushions, perfect marvels of needlework, as were the + curtains and coverlets of the mighty bed, and the screens to be arranged + for privacy. There were toilette vessels of beautifully shaped and + brightly polished brass, and on a silver salver was a refection of manchet + bread, comfits, dried cherries, and wine. + </p> + <p> + Sister Mabel explained that a lay-sister would be at hand, in case + anything was needed by the noble ladies, and then hurried away to vespers. + </p> + <p> + Jean threw herself upon the cross-legged chair that stood nearest. + </p> + <p> + ‘A nunnery forsooth! Does our uncle trow that is what I came here for? We + have had enow of nunneries at home.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, fie for shame, Jeanie!’ cried Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘’Twas thou that saidst it,’ returned Jean. ‘Thou saidst thou hadst no + call to the veil, and gin my Lord trows that we shall thole to be shut up + here, he will find himself in the wrong.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Lassie, lassie,’ exclaimed Lady Drummond, ‘what ails ye? This is but a + lodging, and sic a braw chamber as ye hae scarce seen before. Would you + have your uncle lodge ye among all his priests and clerks? Scarce the + place for douce maidens, I trow.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Leddy of Glenuskie, ye’re not sae sib to the bluid royal of Scotland as + to speak thus! Lassie indeed!’ + </p> + <p> + Again Eleanor remonstrated. ‘Jeanie, to speak thus to our gude kinswoman!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I would have all about me ken their place, and what fits them,’ said the + haughty young lady, partly out of ill-temper and disappointment, partly in + imitation of the demeanour of Duchess Cicely. ‘As to the Cardinal, I would + have him bear in mind that we are a king’s own daughters, and he is at + best but the grandson of a king! And if he deems that he has a right to + shut us up here out of sight of the King and his court, lest we should + cross his rule over his King and disturb his French policy and craft, + there are those that will gar him ken better!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Some one else will ken better,’ quietly observed Dame Lilias. ‘Gin ye be + no clean daft, Leddy Joanna, since naething else will serve ye, canna ye + see that to strive with the Cardinal is the worst gait to win his favour + with the King, gin that be what ye be set upon?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There be others that can deal with the King, forbye the Cardinal,’ said + Jean, tossing her head. + </p> + <p> + Just then arrived a sister, sent by the Mother Prioress, to invite the + ladies to supper in her own apartments. + </p> + <p> + Her respectful manner so far pacified Jean’s ill-humour that a civil reply + was returned; the young ladies bestirred themselves to make preparations, + though Jean grumbled at the trouble for ‘a pack of womenfolk’—and + supposed they were to make a meal of dried peas and red herrings, like + their last on Lammermuir. + </p> + <p> + It was a surprise to be conducted, not to the refectory, where all the + nuns took their meal together, but to a small room opening into the + cloister on one side, and with a window embowered in vines on the other, + looking into the garden. It was by no means bare, like the typical cells + of strict convents. The Mother, Margaret Stafford, was a great lady, and + the Benedictines of the old foundation of St. Helen’s in the midst of the + capital were indeed respectable and respected, but very far from strict + observers of their rule—and St. Helen’s was so much influenced by + the wealth and display of the city that the nuns, many of whom were these + great merchants’ daughters, would have been surprised to be told that they + had departed from Benedictine simplicity. So the Prioress’s chamber was + tapestried above with St. Helena’s life, and below was enclosed with + drapery panels. It was strewed with sweet fresh rushes, and had three + cross-legged chairs, besides several stools; the table, as usual upon + trestles, was provided with delicate napery, and there was a dainty + perfume about the whole; a beautiful crucifix of ivory and ebony, with + images of Our Lady and St. John on either side, and another figure of St. + Helena, cross in hand, presiding over the holy water stoup, were the most + ecclesiastical things in the garniture, except the exquisitely illuminated + breviary that lay open upon a desk. + </p> + <p> + Mother Margaret rose to receive her guests with as much dignity as Jean + herself could have shown, and made them welcome to her poor house, hoping + that they would there find things to their mind. + </p> + <p> + Something restrained Jean from bursting out with her petulant complaint, + and it was Eleanor who replied with warm thanks. ‘My Lord Cardinal would + come to visit them on the morn,’ the Prioress said; ‘and in the meantime, + she hoped,’ looking at Jean, ‘they would condescend to the hospitality of + the poor daughters of St. Helen.’ + </p> + <p> + The hospitality, as brought in by two plump, well-fed lay-sisters, + consisted of ‘chickens in cretyne,’ stewed in milk, seasoned with sugar, + coloured with saffron, of potage of oysters, butter of almond-milk, and + other delicate meats, such as had certainly never been tasted at Stirling + or Dunbar. Lady Drummond’s birth entitled her and Annis to sit at table + with the Princesses and the Prioress, and she ventured to inquire after + Esclairmonde de Luxembourg, or, as she was now called, Sister Clare of St. + Katharine’s. + </p> + <p> + ‘I see her at times. She is the head of the sisters,’ said the Prioress; + ‘but we have few dealings with uncloistered sisters.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘They do a holy work,’ observed Lady Lilias. + </p> + <p> + ‘None ever blamed the Benedictines for lack of alms-deeds,’ returned the + Prioress haughtily, scarcely attending to the guest’s disclaimer. ‘Nor do + I deem it befitting that instead of the poor coming to us our sisters + should run about to all the foulest hovels of the Docks, encountering men + continually, and those of the rudest sort.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Yet there are calls and vocations for all,’ ventured Lady Drummond. ‘And + the sick are brethren in need.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Let them send to us for succour then,’ answered Mother Margaret. ‘I grant + that it is well that some one should tend them in their huts, but such + tasks are for sisters of low birth and breeding. Mine are ladies of noble + rank, though I do admit daughters of Lord Mayors and Aldermen.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Our Saint Margaret was a queen, Reverend Mother,’ put in Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘She was no nun, saving your Grace,’ said the Prioress. ‘What I speak of + is that which beseems a daughter of St. Bennet, of an ancient and royal + foundation! The saving of the soul is so much harder to the worldly life, + specially to a queen, that it is no marvel if she has to abase herself + more—even to the washing of lepers—than is needful to a vowed + and cloistered sister.’ + </p> + <p> + It was an odd theory, that this Benedictine seclusion saved trouble, as + being actually the strait course; but the young maidens were not scholars + enough to question it, and Dame Lilias, though she had learnt more from + her brother and her friend, would have deemed it presumptuous to dispute + with a Reverend Mother. So only Eleanor murmured, ‘The holy Margaret no + saint’—and Jean, ‘Weel, I had liefer take my chance.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘All have not a vocation,’ piously said the Mother. ‘Taste this Rose + Dalmoyne, Madame; our lay-sister Mold is famed for making it. An alderman + of the Fishmongers’ Company sent to beg that his cook might know the + secret, but that was not to be lightly parted with, so we only send them a + dish for their banquets.’ + </p> + <p> + Rose Dalmoyne was chiefly of peas, flavoured with almonds and milk, but + the guests grew weary of the varieties of delicacies, and were very glad + when the tables were removed, and Eleanor asked permission to look at the + illuminations in the breviary on the desk. + </p> + <p> + And exquisite they were. The book had been brought from Italy and + presented to the Prioress by a merchant who wished to place his daughter + in St. Helen’s, and the beauty was unspeakable. There were natural flowers + painted so perfectly that the scattered violets seemed to invite the hand + to lift them up from their gold-besprinkled bed, and flies and beetles + that Eleanor actually attempted to drive away; and at all the greater holy + days, the type and the antitype covering the two whole opposite pages were + represented in the admirable art and pure colouring of the early + Cinquecento. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor and Annis were entranced, and the Prioress, seeing that books had + an attraction for her younger guest, promised her on the morrow a sight of + some of the metrical lives of the saints, especially of St. Katharine and + of St. Cecilia. It must be owned that Jean was not fretted as she expected + by chapel bells in the middle of the night, nor was even Lady Drummond + summoned by them as she intended, but there was a conglomeration of the + night services in the morning, with beautiful singing, that delighted + Eleanor, and the festival mass ensuing was also more ornate than anything + to be seen in Scotland. And that the extensive almsgiving had not been a + vain boast was evident from the swarms of poor of all kinds who + congregated in the outer court for the attention of the Sisters Almoner + and Infirmarer, attended by two or three novices and some lay-sisters. + </p> + <p> + There were genuine poor, ragged forlorn women, and barefooted, almost + naked children, and also sturdy beggars, pilgrims and palmers on their way + to various shrines, north or south, and many more for whom a dole of broth + or bread sufficed; but there were also others with heads or limbs tied up, + sometimes injured in the many street fights, but oftener with the terrible + sores only too common from the squalid habits and want of vegetable diet + of the poor. These were all attended to with a tenderness and patience + that spoke well for the charity of Sister Anne and her assistants, and + indeed before long Dame Lilias perceived that, however slack and + easy-going the general habits might be, there were truly meek and saintly + women among the sisterhood. + </p> + <p> + The morning was not far advanced before a lay-sister came hurrying in from + the portress’s wicket to announce that my Lord Cardinal was on his way to + visit the ladies of Scotland. There was great commotion. Mother Margaret + summoned all her nuns and drew them up in state, and Sister Mabel, who + carried the tidings to the guests, asked whether they would not join in + receiving him. + </p> + <p> + ‘We are king’s daughters,’ said Jean haughtily. + </p> + <p> + ‘But he is a Prince of the Church and an aged man,’ said Lady Drummond, + who had already risen, and was adjusting that headgear of Eleanor’s that + never would stay in its place. And her matronly voice acted upon Jean, so + as to conquer the petulant pride, enough to make her remember that the + Lady of Glenuskie was herself a Stewart and king’s grandchild, and + moreover knew more of courts and their habits than herself. + </p> + <p> + So down they went together, in time to join the Prioress on the steps, as + the attendants of the great stately, princely Cardinal Bishop began to + appear. He did not come in state, so that he had only half a dozen clerks + and as many gentlemen in attendance, together with Sir Patrick and his two + sons. + </p> + <p> + Few of the Plantagenet family had been long-lived, and Cardinal Beaufort + was almost a marvel in the family at seventy. Much evil has been said and + written of him, and there is no doubt that he was one of those mediaeval + prelates who ought to have been warriors or statesmen, and that he had + been no model for the Episcopacy in his youth. But though far from having + been a saint, it would seem that his unpopularity in his old age was + chiefly incurred by his desire to put an end to the long and miserable war + with France, and by his opposition to a much worse man, the Duke of + Gloucester, whose plausible murmurs and amiable manners made him a general + favourite. At this period of his life the old man had lived past his + political ambitions, and his chief desire was to leave the gentle young + king freed from the wasting war by a permanent peace, to be secured by a + marriage with a near connection of the French monarch, and daughter to the + most honourable and accomplished Prince in Europe. That his measures + turned out wretchedly has been charged upon his memory, and he has been + supposed guilty of a murder, of which he was certainly innocent, and which + probably was no murder at all. + </p> + <p> + He had become a very grand and venerable old man, when old men were + scarce, and his white hair and beard (a survival of the customs of the + days of Edward III) contrasted well with his scarlet hat and cape, as he + came slowly into the cloistered court on his large sober-paced Spanish + mule; a knight and the chaplain of the convent assisted him from it, and + the whole troop of the convent knelt as he lifted his fingers to bestow + his blessing, Jean casting a quick glance around to satisfy her proud + spirit. The Prioress then kissed his hand, but he raised and kissed the + cheeks of his two grand-nieces, after which he moved on to the Prioress’s + chamber, and there, after being installed in her large chair, and waving + to the four favoured inmates to be also seated, he looked critically at + the two sisters, and observed, ‘So, maidens! one favours the mother, the + other the father! Poor Joan, it is two-and-twenty years since we bade her + good-speed, she and her young king—who behoved to be a minstrel—on + her way to her kingdom, as if it were the land of Cockayne, for picking up + gold and silver. Little of that she found, I trow, poor wench. Alack! it + was a sore life we sent her to. And you are mourning her freshly, my + maidens! I trust she died at peace with God and man.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That reiver, Patrick Hepburn, let the priest from Haddington come to + assoilzie and housel her,’ responded Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! Masses shall be said for her by my bedesmen at St. Cross, and at all + my churches,’ said the Cardinal, crossing himself. ‘And you are on your + way to your sister, the Dolfine, as your knight tells me. It is well. You + may be worthily wedded in France, and I will take order for your safe + going. Meantime, this is a house where you may well serve your poor + mother’s soul by prayers and masses, and likewise perfect yourselves in + French.’ + </p> + <p> + This was not at all what Jean had intended, and she pouted a little, while + the Cardinal asked, changing his language, ‘Ces donzelles, ont elles + appris le Francais?’ + </p> + <p> + Jean, who had tried to let Father Romuald teach her a little in + conversation during the first part of the journey, but who had dropped the + notion since other ideas had been inspired at Fotheringay, could not + understand, and pouted the more; but Eleanor, who had been interested, and + tried more in earnest, for Margaret’s sake, answered diffidently and + blushing deeply, ‘Un petit peu, beau Sire Oncle.’ + </p> + <p> + He smiled, and said, ‘You can be well instructed here. The Reverend Mother + hath sisters here who can both speak and write French of Paris.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That have I truly, my good Lord,’ replied the Prioress. ‘Sisters Isabel + and Beata spent their younger days, the one at Rouen, the other at + Bordeaux, and have learned many young ladies in the true speaking of the + French tongue.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It is well!’ said the Cardinal, ‘my fair nieces will have good leisure. + While sharing the orisons that I will institute for the repose of your + mother, you can also be taught the French.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean could not help speaking now, so far was this from all her hopes. + ‘Sir, sir, the Duke and Duchess of York, and the Countess of Salisbury, + and the Queen of the Isle of Wight all bade us to be their guests.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘They could haply not have been aware of your dool,’ said the Cardinal + gravely. + </p> + <p> + ‘But, my Lord, our mother hath been dead since before Martinmas,’ + exclaimed Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘I know not what customs of dool be thought befitting in a land like + Scotland,’ said the Cardinal, in such a repressive manner that Jean was + only withheld by awe from bursting into tears of disappointment and anger + at the slight to her country. + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond ventured to speak. ‘Alack, my Lord,’ she said, ‘my poor + Queen died in the hands of a freebooter, leaving her daughters in such + stress and peril that they had woe enough for themselves, till their + brother the King came to their rescue.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The more need that they should fulfil all that may be done for the grace + of her soul,’ replied the uncle; but just at this crisis of Jean’s + mortification there was a knocking at the door, and a sister breathlessly + entreated— + </p> + <p> + ‘Pardon! Merci! My Lord, my Lady Mother! Here’s the King, the King himself—and + the King and Queen of the Isle of Wight asking licence to enter to visit + the ladies of Scotland.’ + </p> + <p> + Kings were always held to be free to enter anywhere, even far more + dangerous monarchs than the pious Henry VI. Jean’s heart bounded up again, + with a sense of exultation over the old uncle, as the Prioress went out to + receive her new guest, and the Cardinal emitted a sort of grunting sigh, + without troubling himself to go out to meet the youth, whom he had + governed from babyhood, and in whose own name he had, as one of the + council, given permission for wholesome chastisements of the royal person. + </p> + <p> + King Henry entered. He was then twenty-four years old, tall, graceful, and + with beautiful features and complexion, almost feminine in their delicacy, + and with a wonderful purity and sweetness in the expression of the mouth + and blue eyes, so that he struck Eleanor as resembling the angels in the + illuminations that she had been studying, as he removed his dark green + velvet jewelled cap on entering, and gave a cousinly, respectful kiss + lightly to each of the young ladies on her cheek, somewhat as if he were + afraid of them. Then after greeting the Cardinal, who had risen on his + entrance, he said that, hearing that his fair cousins were arrived, he had + come to welcome them, and to entreat them to let him do them such honour + as was possible in a court without a queen. + </p> + <p> + ‘The which lack will soon be remedied,’ put in his grand-uncle. + </p> + <p> + ‘Truly you are in holy keeping here,’ said the pious young King, crossing + himself, ‘but I trust, my sweet cousins, that you will favour my poor + house at Westminster with your presence at a supper, and share such + entertainment as is in our power to provide.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My nieces are keeping their mourning for their mother, from which they + have hitherto been hindered by the tumults of their kingdom,’ said the + Cardinal. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah!’ said the King, crossing himself, and instantly moved, ‘far be it + from me to break into their holy retirement for such a purpose.’ (Jean + could have bitten the Cardinal.) ‘But I will take order with my Lord Abbot + of Westminster for a grand requiem mass for the good Queen Joanna, at + which they will, I trust, be present, and they will honour my poor table + afterwards.’ + </p> + <p> + To refuse this was quite impossible, and the day was to be fixed after + reference to the Abbess. Meantime the King’s eye was caught by the + illuminated breviary. He was a connoisseur in such arts, and eagerly stood + up to look at it as it lay on the desk. Eleanor could not but come and + direct him to the pages with which she had been most delighted. She found + him looking at Jacob’s dream on the one side, the Ascension on the other. + </p> + <p> + ‘How marvellous it is!’ she said. ‘It is like the very light from the + sky!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Light from heaven,’ said the King; ‘Jacob has found it among the stones. + Wandering and homelessness are his first step in the ladder to heaven!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, sir, did you say that to comfort and hearten us?’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + There was a strange look in the startled blue eyes that met hers. ‘Nay, + truly, lady, I presumed not so far! I was but wondering whether those who + are born to have all the world are in the way of the stair to heaven.’ + </p> + <p> + Meantime the King of Wight had made his request for the presence of the + ladies at a supper at Warwick House, and Jean, clasping her hands, + implored her uncle to consent. + </p> + <p> + ‘I am sure our mother cannot be the better for our being thus mewed up,’ + she cried, ‘and I’ll rise at prime, and tell my beads for her.’ + </p> + <p> + She looked so pretty and imploring that the old man’s heart was melted, + all the more that the King was paying more attention to the book and the + far less beautiful Eleanor, than to her and the invitation was accepted. + </p> + <p> + The convent bell rang for nones, and the King joined the devotions of the + nuns, though he was not admitted within the choir; and just as these were + over, the Countess of Salisbury arrived to take the Lady of Glenuskie to + see their old friend, the Mother Clare at St. Katharine’s, bringing a + sober palfrey for her conveyance. + </p> + <p> + ‘A holy woman, full of alms-deeds,’ said the King. ‘The lady is happy in + her friendship.’ + </p> + <p> + Which words were worth much to Lady Drummond, for the Prioress sent a + lay-sister to invite Mother Clare to a refection at the convent. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 5. THE MEEK USURPER + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Henry, thou of holy birth, + Thou to whom thy Windsor gave + Nativity and name and grave! + Heavily upon his head + Ancestral crimes were visited.’—SOUTHEY. +</pre> + <p> + It suits not with the main thread of our story to tell of the happy and + peaceful meetings between the Lady of Glenuskie and her old friend, who + had given up almost princely rank and honour to become the servant of the + poor and suffering strangers at the wharves of London. To Dame Lilias, + Mother Clare’s quiet cell at St. Katharine’s was a blessed haven of rest, + peace, and charity, such as was neither the guest-chamber nor the + Prioress’s parlour at St. Helen’s, with all the distractions of the + princesses’ visitors and invitations, and with the Lady Joanna continually + pulling against the authority that the Cardinal, her uncle, was exerting + over his nieces. + </p> + <p> + His object evidently was to keep them back, firstly, from the York party, + and secondly, from the King, under pretext of their mourning for their + mother; and in this he might have succeeded but for the interest in them + that had been aroused in Henry by his companion, namesake, and almost + brother, the King of Wight. The King came or sent each day to St. Helen’s + to arrange about the requiem at Westminster, and when their late + travelling companions invited the young ladies to dinner or to supper + expressly to meet the King and the Cardinal—not in state, but at + what would be now called a family party—Beaufort had no excuse for a + refusal, such as he could not give without dire offence. And, indeed, he + was even then obliged to yield to the general voice, and, recalling his + own nephew from Normandy, send the Duke of York to defend the remnant of + the English conquests. + </p> + <p> + He could only insist that the requiem should be the first occasion of the + young ladies going out of the convent; but they had so many visitors there + that they had not much cause for murmuring, and the French instructions of + Sister Beata did not amount to much, even with Eleanor, while Jean loudly + protested that she was not going to school. + </p> + <p> + The great day of the requiem came at last. The Cardinal had, through Sir + Patrick Drummond and the Lady, provided handsome robes of black and purple + for his nieces, and likewise palfreys for their conveyance to Westminster; + and made it understood that unless Lady Joanna submitted to be completely + veiled he should send a closed litter. + </p> + <p> + ‘The doited auld carle!’ she cried, as she unwillingly hooded and veiled + herself. ‘One would think we were basilisks to slay the good folk of + London with our eyes.’ + </p> + <p> + The Drummond following, with fresh thyme sprays, beginning to turn brown, + were drawn up in the outer court, all with black scarves across the breast—George + Douglas among them, of course—and they presently united with the + long train of clerks who belonged to the household of the Cardinal of + Winchester. Jean managed her veil so as to get more than one peep at the + throng in the streets through which they passed, so as to see and to be + seen; and she was disappointed that no acclamations greeted the fair face + thus displayed by fits. She did not understand English politics enough to + know that a Beaufort face and Beaufort train were the last things the + London crowd was likely to applaud. They had not forgotten the penance of + the popular Duke Humfrey’s wife, which, justly or unjustly, was imputed to + the Cardinal and his nephews of Somerset. + </p> + <p> + But the King, in robes of purple and black, came to assist her from her + palfrey before the beautiful entry of the Abbey Church, and led her up the + nave to the desks prepared around what was then termed ‘a herce,’ but + which would now be called a catafalque, an erection supposed to contain + the body, and adorned with the lozenges of the arms of Scotland and + Beaufort, and of the Stewart, in honour of the Black Knight of Lorn. + </p> + <p> + The Cardinal was present, but the Abbot of Westminster celebrated. All was + exceedingly solemn and beautiful, in a far different style from the maimed + rites that had been bestowed upon poor Queen Joanna in Scotland. The young + King’s face was more angelic than ever, and as psalm and supplication, + dirge and hymn arose, chanted by the full choir, speaking of eternal + peace, Eleanor bowed her head under her veil, as her bosom swelled with a + strange yearning longing, not exactly grief, and large tears dropped from + her eyes as she thought less of her mother than of her noble-hearted + father; and the words came back to her in which Father Malcolm Stewart, in + his own bitter grief, had told the desolate children to remember that + their father was waiting for them in Paradise. Even Jean was so touched by + the music and carried out of herself that she forgot the spectators, + forgot the effect she was to produce, forgot her struggle with her uncle, + and sobbed and wept with all her heart, perhaps with the more abandon + because she, like all the rest, was fasting. + </p> + <p> + With much reverence for her emotion, the King, when the service was over, + led her out of the church to the adjoining palace, where the Queen of + Wight and the Countess of Suffolk, a kinswoman through the mother of the + Beauforts, conducted the ladies to unveil themselves before they were to + join the noontide refection with the King. + </p> + <p> + There was no great state about it, spread, as it was, not in the great + hall, but in the richly-tapestried room called Paradise. The King’s manner + was most gently and sweetly courteous to both sisters. His three little + orphan half-brothers, the Tudors, were at table; and his kind care to send + them dainties, and the look with which he repressed an unseasonable + attempt of Jasper’s to play with the dogs, and Edmund’s roughness with + little Owen, reminded the sisters of Mary with ‘her weans,’ and they began + to speak of them when the meal was over, while he showed them his chief + treasures, his books. There was St. Augustine’s City of God, exquisitely + copied; there was the History of St. Louis, by the bon Sire de Joinville; + there were Sir John Froissart’s Chronicles, the same that the good Canon + had presented to King Richard of Bordeaux. + </p> + <p> + Jean cast a careless glance at the illuminations, and exclaimed at Queen + Isabel’s high headgear and her becloaked greyhound. Eleanor looked and + longed, and sighed that she could not read the French, and only a very + little of the Latin. + </p> + <p> + ‘This you can read,’ said Henry, producing the Canterbury Tales; ‘the fair + minstrelsy of my Lady of Suffolk’s grandsire.’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor was enchanted. Here were the lines the King of Wight had repeated + to her, and she was soon eagerly listening as Henry read to her the story + of ‘Patient Grisell.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! but is it well thus tamely to submit?’ she asked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Patience is the armour and conquest of the godly,’ said Henry, quoting a + saying that was to serve ‘the meek usurper’ well in after-times. + </p> + <p> + ‘May not patience go too far?’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘In this world, mayhap,’ said he; ‘scarcely so in that which is to come.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I would not be the King’s bride to hear him say so,’ laughed the Lady of + Suffolk. ‘Shall I tell her, my lord, that this is your Grace’s ladder to + carry her to heaven?’ + </p> + <p> + Henry blushed like a girl, and said that he trusted never to be so lacking + in courtesy as the knight; and the King of Wight, wishing to change the + subject, mentioned that the Lady Eleanor had sung or said certain choice + ballads, and Henry eagerly entreated for one. It was the pathetic ‘Wife of + Usher’s Well’ that Eleanor chose, with the three sons whose hats were + wreathen with the birk that + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Neither grew in dyke nor ditch, + Nor yet in any shaugh, + But at the gates of Paradise + That birk grew fair eneugh.’ +</pre> + <p> + Henry was greatly delighted with the verse, and entreated her, if it were + not tedious, to repeat it over again. + </p> + <p> + In return he promised to lend her some of the translations from the Latin + of Lydgate, the Monk of Bury, and sent them, wrapped in a silken + neckerchief, by the hands of one of his servants to the convent. + </p> + <p> + ‘Was that a token?’ anxiously asked young Douglas, riding up to David + Drummond, as they got into order to ride back to Winchester House, after + escorting the ladies to St. Helen’s. + </p> + <p> + ‘Token, no; ‘tis a book for Lady Elleen. Never fash yourself, man; the + King, so far as I might judge, is far more taken with Elleen than ever he + is with Jean. He seems but a bookish sort of bodie of Malcolm’s sort.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My certie, an’ that be sae, we may look to winning back Roxburgh and + Berwick!’ returned the Douglas, his eye flashing. ‘He’s welcome to Lady + Elleen! But that ane should look at her in presence of her sister! He maun + be mair of a monk than a man!’ + </p> + <p> + Such was, in truth, Jean’s own opinion when she flounced into her chamber + at the Priory and turned upon her sister. + </p> + <p> + ‘Weel, Elleen, and I hope ye’ve had your will, and are a bit shamed, + taking up his Grace so that none by yersell could get in a word wi’ him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Deed, Jeanie, I could not help it; if he would ask me about our ballants + and buiks, that ye would never lay your mind to—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ballants and buiks! Bonnie gear for a king that should be thinking of + spears and jacks, lances and honours. Ye’re welcome to him, Elleen, sin ye + choose to busk your cockernnonny at ane that’s as good as wedded! I’ll + never have the man who’s wanting the strick of carle hemp in the making of + him!’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor burst into tears and pleaded that she was incapable of any such + intentions towards a man who was truly as good as married. She declared + that she had only replied as courtesy required, and that she would not + have her harp taken to Warwick House the next day, as she had been + requested to do. + </p> + <p> + Dame Lilias here interposed. With a certain conviction that Jean’s dislike + to the King was chiefly because the grapes were sour, she declared that + Lady Elleen had by no means gone beyond the demeanour of a douce maiden, + and that the King had only shown due attention to guests of his own rank, + and who were nearly of his own age. In fact, she said, it might be his + caution and loyalty to his espoused lady that made him avoid + distinguishing the fairest. + </p> + <p> + It was not complimentary to Eleanor, but Jean’s superior beauty was as + much an established fact as her age, and she was pacified in some degree, + agreeing with the Lady of Glenuskie that Eleanor was bound to take her + harp the next day. + </p> + <p> + Warwick House was a really magnificent place, its courts, gardens, and + offices covering much of the ground that still bears the name in the City, + and though the establishment was not quite as extensive as it became a few + years later, when Richard Nevil had succeeded his brother-in-law, it was + already on a magnificent scale. + </p> + <p> + All the party who had travelled together from Fotheringay were present, + besides the King, young Edmund and Jasper Tudor, and the Earl and Countess + of Suffolk; and the banquet, though not a state one, nor encumbered with + pageants and subtilties, was even more refined and elegant than that at + Westminster, showing, as all agreed, the hand of a mistress of the + household. The King’s taste had been consulted, for in the gallery were + the children of St. Paul’s choir and of the chapel of the household, who + sang hymns with sweet trained voices. Afterwards, on the beautiful October + afternoon, there was walking in the garden, where Edmund and Jasper played + with little Lady Anne Beauchamp, and again King Henry sought out Eleanor, + and they had an enjoyable discussion of the Tale of Troie, which he had + lent her, as they walked along the garden paths. Then she showed him her + cousin Malcolm, and told of Bishop Kennedy and the schemes for St. + Andrews, and he in return described Winchester College, and spoke of his + wish to have such another foundation as Wykeham’s under his own eye near + Windsor, to train up the godly clergy, whom he saw to be the great need + and lack of the Church at that day. + </p> + <p> + By and by, on going in from the garden, the King and Eleanor found that a + tall, gray-haired gentleman, richly but darkly clad, had entered the hall. + He had been welcomed by the young King and Queen of Wight, who had + introduced Jean to him. ‘My uncle of Gloucester,’ said the King, aside. + ‘It is the first time he has come among us since the unhappy affair of his + wife. Let me present you to him.’ + </p> + <p> + Going forward, as the Duke rose to meet him, Henry bent his knee and asked + his fatherly blessing, then introduced the Lady Eleanor of Scotland—‘who + knows all lays and songs, and loves letters, as you told me her blessed + father did, my fair uncle,’ he said, with sparkling eyes. + </p> + <p> + Duke Humfrey looked well pleased as he greeted her. ‘Ever the scholar, + Nevoy Hal,’ he said, as if marvelling at the preference above the beauty, + ‘but each man knows his own mind. So best.’ Eleanor’s heart began to beat + high! What did this bode? Was this King fully pledged? She had to fulfil + her promise of singing and playing to the King, which she did very + sweetly, some of the pathetic airs of her country, which reach back much + farther than the songs with which they have in later times been + associated. The King thoroughly enjoyed the music, and the Duke of York + came and paid her several compliments, begging for the song she had once + begun at Fotheringay. Eleanor began—not perhaps so willingly as + before. Strangely, as she sang— + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Owre muckle blinking blindeth the ee, lass, + Owre muckle thinking changeth the mind,’— +</pre> + <p> + her face and voice altered. Something of the same mist of tears and blood + seemed to rise before her eyes as before—enfolding all around. Such + a winding-sheet which had before enwrapt the King of Wight, she saw it + again—nay, on the Duke of Gloucester there was such another, + mounting—mounting to his neck. The face of Henry himself grew dim + and ghastly white, like that of a marble saint. She kept herself from + screaming, but her voice broke down, and she gave a choking sob. + </p> + <p> + King Henry’s arm was the first to support her, though she shuddered as he + touched her, calling for essences, and lamenting that they had asked too + much of her in begging her to sing what so reminded her of her home and + parents. + </p> + <p> + ‘She hath been thus before. It was that song,’ said Jean, and the Lady of + Glenuskie coming up at the same time confirmed the idea, and declined all + help except to take her back to the Priory. The litter that had brought + the Countess of Salisbury was at the door, and Henry would not be denied + the leading her to it. She was recovering herself, and could see the + extreme sweetness and solicitude of his face, and feel that she had never + before leant on so kind and tender a supporting arm, since she had sat on + her father’s knee. ‘Ah! sir, you mind me of my blessed father,’ she said. + </p> + <p> + ‘Your father was a holy man, and died well-nigh a martyr’s death,’ said + Henry. ‘’Tis an honour I thank you for to even me to him—such as I + am.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, sir! the saints guard you from such a fate,’ she said, trembling. + </p> + <p> + ‘Was it so sad a fate—to die for the good he could not work in his + life?’ said Henry. + </p> + <p> + They had reached the arch into the court. A crowd was round them, and no + more could be said. Henry kissed Eleanor’s hand, as he assisted her into + the litter, and she was shut in between the curtains, alone, for it only + held one person. There was a strange tumult of feeling. She seemed lifted + into a higher region, as if she had been in contact with an angel of + purity, and yet there was that strange sense of awful fate all round, as + if Henry were nearer being the martyr than the angel. And was she to share + that fate? The generous young soul seemed to spring forward with the + thought that, come what might, it would be hallowed and sweetened with + such as he! Yet withal there was a sense of longing to protect and shield + him. + </p> + <p> + As usual, she had soon quite recovered, but Jean pronounced it ‘one of + Elleen’s megrims—as if she were a Hielander to have second sight.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But,’ said the young lady, ‘it takes no second sight to spae ill to + yonder King. He is not one whose hand will keep his head, and there are + those who say that he had best look to his crown, for he hath no more + right thereto than I have to be Queen of France!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Fie, Jean, that’s treason.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I’m none of his, nor ever will be! I have too much spirit for a gudeman + who cares for nothing but singing his psalter like a friar.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean was even more of that opinion when, the next day, at York House, only + Edmund and Jasper Tudor appeared with their brother’s excuses. He had been + obliged to give audience to a messenger from the Emperor. ‘Moreover,’ + added Edmund disconsolately, ‘to-morrow he is going to St. Albans for a + week’s penitence. Harry is always doing penance, I cannot think what for. + He never eats marchpane in church—nor rolls balls there.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I know,’ said Jasper sagely. ‘I heard the Lord Cardinal rating him for + being false to his betrothed—that’s the Lady Margaret, you know.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ha!’ said the Duke of York, before whom the two little boys were + standing. ‘How was that, my little man?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hush, Jasper,’ said Edmund; ‘you do not know.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But I do, Edmund; I was in the window all the time. Harry said he did not + know it, he only meant all courtesy; and then the Lord Cardinal asked him + if he called it loyalty to his betrothed to be playing the fool with the + Scottish wench. And then Harry stared—like thee, Ned, when thy bolt + had hit the Lady of Suffolk: and my Lord went on to say that it was + perilous to play the fool with a king’s sister, and his own niece. Then, + for all that Harry is a king and a man grown, he wept like Owen, only not + loud, and he went down on his knees, and he cried, “Mea peccata, mea + peccata, mea infirmitas,” just as he taught me to do at confession. And + then he said he would do whatever the Lord Cardinal thought fit, and go + and do penance at St. Albans, if he pleased, and not see the lady that + sings any more.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And I say,’ exclaimed Edmund, ‘what’s the good of being a king and a man, + if one is to be rated like a babe?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘So say I, my little man,’ returned the Duke, patting him on the head, + then adding to his own two boys, ‘Take your cousins and play ball with + them, or spin tops, or whatever may please them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There is the king we have,’ quoth Richard Nevil ‘to be at the beck of any + misproud priest, and bewail with tears a moment’s following of his own + will, like other men.’ + </p> + <p> + Most of the company felt such misplaced penitence and submission, as they + deemed it, beneath contempt; but while Eleanor had pride enough to hold up + her head so that no one might suppose her to be disappointed, she felt a + strange awe of the conscientiousness that repented when others would only + have felt resentment—relief, perhaps, at not again coming into + contact with one so unlike other men as almost to alarm her. + </p> + <p> + Jean tossed up her head, and declared that her brother knew better than to + let any bishop put him into leading-strings. By and by there was a great + outcry among the children, and Edmund Tudor and Edward of York were + fighting like a pair of mastiff-puppies because Edward had laughed at King + Harry for minding what an old shaveling said. Edward, though the younger, + was much the stronger, and was decidedly getting the best of it, when he + was dragged off and sent into seclusion with his tutor for misbehaviour to + his guest. + </p> + <p> + No one was amazed when the next day the Cardinal arrived, and told his + grand-nieces and the Lady of Glenuskie that he had arranged that they + should go forward under the escort of the Earl and Countess of Suffolk, + who were to start immediately for Nanci, there to espouse and bring home + the King’s bride, the Lady Margaret. There was reason to think that the + French Royal Family would be present on the occasion, as the Queen of + France was sister to King Rene of Sicily and Jerusalem, and thus the + opportunity of joining their sister was not to be missed by the two + Scottish maidens. The Cardinal added that he had undertaken, and made Sir + Patrick Drummond understand, that he would be at all charges for his + nieces, and further said that merchants with women’s gear would presently + be sent in, when they were to fit themselves out as befitted their rank + for appearance at the wedding. At a sign from him a large bag, jingling + heavily, was laid on the table by a clerk in attendance. There was nothing + to be done but to make a low reverence and return thanks. + </p> + <p> + Jean had it in her to break out with ironical hopes that they would see + something beyond the walls of a priory abroad, and not be ordered off the + moment any one cast eyes on them; but my Lord of Winchester was not the + man to be impertinent to, especially when bringing gifts as a kindly + uncle, and when, moreover, King Henry had the bad taste to be more + occupied with her sister than with herself. + </p> + <p> + It was Eleanor who chiefly felt a sort of repugnance to being thus, as it + were, bought off or compensated for being sent out of reach. She could + have found it in her heart to be offended at being thought likely to wish + to steal the King’s heart, and yet flattered by being, for the first time, + considered as dangerous, even while her awe, alike of Henry’s holiness and + of those strange visions that had haunted her, made her feel it a relief + that her lot was not to be cast with him. + </p> + <p> + The Cardinal did not seem to wish to prolong the interview with his + grand-nieces, having perhaps a certain consciousness of injury towards + them; and, after assuring brilliant marriages for them, and graciously + blessing them, he bade them farewell, saying that the Lady of Suffolk + would come and arrange with them for the journey. No doubt, though he + might have been glad to place a niece on the throne, it would have been + fatal to the peace he so much desired for Henry to break his pledges to so + near a kinswoman of the King of France. And when the bag was opened, and + the rouleaux of gold and silver crowns displayed, his liberality + contradicted the current stories of his avarice. + </p> + <p> + And by and by arrived a succession of merchants bringing horned hoods, + transparent veils, like wings, supported on wire projections, long trained + dresses of silk and sendal, costly stomachers, bands of velvet, buckles + set with precious stones, chains of gold and silver—all the + fashions, in fact, enough to turn the head of any young lady, and in which + the staid Lady Prioress seemed to take quite as much interest as if she + had been to wear them herself—indeed, she asked leave to send Sister + Mabel to fetch a selection of the older nuns given to needlework and + embroidery to enjoy the exhibition, though it was to be carefully kept out + of sight of the younger ones, and especially of the novices. + </p> + <p> + The excitement was enough to put the Cardinal’s offences out of mind, + while the delightful fitting and trying on occupied the maidens, who + looked at themselves in the little hand-mirrors held up to them by the + admiring nuns, and demanded every one’s opinion. Jean insisted that Annis + should have her share, and Eleanor joined in urging it, when Dame Lilias + shook her head, and said that was not the use the Lord Cardinal intended + for his gold. + </p> + <p> + ‘He gave it to us to do as we would with it,’ argued Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘And she is our maiden, and it befits us not that she should look like ane + scrub,’ added Jean, in the words used by her brother’s descendant, a + century later. + </p> + <p> + ‘I thank you, noble cousins,’ replied Annis, with a little haughtiness, + ‘but Davie would never thole to see me pranking it out of English gold.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She is right, Jeanie,’ cried Eleanor. ‘We will make her braw with what we + bought at York with gude Scottish gold.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘All the more just,’ added Jean, ‘that she helped us in our need with her + ain.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And we are sib—near cousins after a’,’ added Eleanor; ‘so we may + well give and take.’ + </p> + <p> + So it was settled, and all was amicable, except that there was a slight + contest between the sisters whether they should dress alike, as Eleanor + wished, while Jean had eyes and instinct enough to see that the colours + and forms that set her fair complexion and flaxen tresses off to + perfection were damaging to Elleen’s freckles and general auburn + colouring. Hitherto the sisters had worn only what they could get, happy + if they could call it ornamental, and the power of choice was a novelty to + them. At last the decision fell to the one who cared most about it, namely + Jean. Elleen left her to settle for both, being, after the first dazzling + display, only eager to get back again to Saint Marie Maudelin before the + King should reclaim it. + </p> + <p> + There was something in the legend, wild and apocryphal as it is, together + with what she had seen of the King, that left a deep impression upon her. + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘And by these things ye understand maun + The three best things which this Mary chose, + As outward penance and inward contemplation, + And upward bliss that never shall cease, + Of which God said withouten bees + That the best part to her chose Mary, + Which ever shall endure and never decrease, + But with her abideth eternally.’ +</pre> + <p> + Stiff, quaint, and awkward sounds old Bokenham’s translation of the + ‘Golden Legend,’ but to Eleanor it had much power. The whole history was + new to her, after her life in Scotland, where information had been slow to + reach her, and books had been few. The gewgaws spread out before Jean were + to her like the gloves, jewels, and braiding of hair with which Martha + reproached her sister in the days of her vanity, and the cloister with its + calm services might well seem to her like the better part. These nuns + indeed did not strike her as models of devotion, and there was something + in the Prioress’s easy way of declaring that being safe there might + prevent any need of special heed, which rung false on her ear; and then + she thought of King Henry, whose rapt countenance had so much struck her, + turning aside from enjoyment to seclude himself at the first hint that his + pleasure might be a temptation. She recollected too what Lady Drummond had + told her of Father Malcolm and Mother Clare, and how each had renounced + the world, which had so much to offer them, and chosen the better part! + She remembered Father Malcolm’s sweet smile and kind words, and Mother + Clare’s face had impressed her deeply with its lofty peace and sweetness. + How much better than all these agitations about princely bridegrooms! and + broken lances and queens of beauty seemed to fade into insignificance, or + to be only incidents in the tumult of secular life and worldly struggle, + and her spirit quailed at the anticipation of the journey she had once + desired, the gay court with its follies, empty show, temptations, + coarsenesses and cruelties, and the strange land with its new language. + The alternative seemed to her from Maudelin in her worldly days to + Maudelin at the Saviour’s feet, and had Mother Margaret Stafford been one + whit more the ideal nun, perhaps every one would have been perplexed by a + vehement request to seclude herself at once in the cloister of St. + Helen’s. + </p> + <p> + Looking up, she saw a figure slowly pacing the turf walk. It was the + Mother Clare, who had come to see the Lady of Glenuskie, but finding all + so deeply engaged, had gone out to await her in the garden. + </p> + <p> + Much indeed had Dame Lilias longed to join her friend, and make the most + of these precious hours, but as purse-bearer and adviser to her Lady + Joanna, it was impossible to leave her till the arrangements with the + merchants were over. And the nuns of St. Helen’s did not, as has already + been seen, think much of an uncloistered sister. In her twenty years’ + toils among the poor it had been pretty well forgotten that Mother Clare + was Esclairmonde de Luxembourg, almost of princely rank, so that no one + took the trouble to entertain her, and she had slipped out almost + unperceived to the quiet garden with its grass walks. And there Eleanor + came up to her, and with glistening tears, on a sudden impulse exclaimed, + ‘Oh, holy Mother, keep me with you, tell me to choose the better part.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You, lady? What is this?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Not lady, daughter—help me! I kenned it not before—but all is + vanity, turmoil, false show, except the sitting at the Lord’s feet.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Most true, my child. Ah! have I not felt the same? But we must wait His + time.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It was I—it was I,’ continued Eleanor, ‘who set Jean upon this + journey, leaving my brother and Mary and the bairns. And the farther we + go, the more there is of vain show and plotting and scheming, and I am + weary and heartsick and homesick of it all, and shall grow worse and + worse. Oh! shelter me here, in your good and holy house, dear Reverend + Mother, and maybe I could learn to do the holy work you do in my own + country.’ + </p> + <p> + How well Esclairmonde knew it all, and what aspirations had been hers! She + took Elleen’s hand kindly and said, ‘Dear maid, I can only aid you by + words! I could not keep you here. Your uncle the Cardinal would not suffer + you to abide here, nor can I take sisters save by consent of the Queen—and + now we have no Queen, of the King, and—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh no, I could not ask that,’ said Eleanor, a deep blush mounting, as she + remembered what construction might be put on her desire to remain in the + King’s neighbourhood. ‘Ah! then must I go on—on—on farther + from home to that Court which they say is full of sin and evil and vanity? + What will become of me?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘If the religious life be good for you, trust me, the way will open, + however unlikely it may seem. If not, Heaven and the saints will show what + your course should be.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But can there be such safety and holiness, save in that higher path?’ + demanded Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, look at your own kinswoman, Dame Lilias—look at the Lady of + Salisbury. Are not these godly, faithful women serving God through their + duty to man—husband, children, all around? And are the longings and + temptations to worldly thoughts and pleasures of the flesh so wholly put + away in the cloister?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Not here,’ began Eleanor, but Mother Clare hushed her. + </p> + <p> + ‘Verily, my child,’ she added, ‘you must go on with your sister on this + journey, trusting to the care and guidance of so good a woman as my + beloved old friend, Dame Lilias; and if you say your prayers with all your + heart to be guarded from sin and temptation, and led into the path that is + fittest for you, trust that our blessed Master and our Lady will lead you. + Have you the Pater Noster in the vulgar tongue?’ she added. + </p> + <p> + ‘We—we had it once ere my father’s death. And Father Malcolm taught + us; but we have since been so cast about that—that—I have + forgotten.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! Father Malcolm taught you,’ and Esclairmonde took the girl’s hand. + ‘You know how much I owe to Father Malcolm,’ she softly added, as she led + the maiden to a carved rood at the end of the cloister, and, before it, + repeated the vernacular version of the Lord’s Prayer till Eleanor knew it + perfectly, and promised to follow up her ‘Pater Nosters’ with it. + </p> + <p> + And from that time there certainly was a different tone and spirit in + Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + David, urged by his father, who still publicly ignored the young Douglas, + persuaded him to write to his father now that there could be no longer any + danger of pursuit, and the messenger Sir Patrick was sending to the King + would afford the last opportunity. George growled and groaned a good deal, + but perhaps Father Romuald pressed the duty on him in confession, for in + his great relief at his lady’s going off unplighted from London, he + consented to indite, in the chamber Father Romuald shared with two of the + Cardinal’s chaplains, in a crooked and crabbed calligraphy and language + much more resembling Anglo-Saxon than modern English, a letter to the most + high and mighty, the Yerl of Angus, ‘these presents.’ + </p> + <p> + But when he was entreated to assume his right position in the troop, he + refused. ‘Na, na, Davie,’ he said, ‘gin my father chooses to send me gear + and following, ‘tis all very weel, but ‘tisna for the credit of Scotland + nor of Angus that the Master should be ganging about like a land-louper, + with a single laddie after him—still less that he should be beholden + to the Drummonds.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ye would win to the speech of the lassie,’ suggested David, ‘gin that be + what ye want!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Na kenning me, she willna look at me. Wait till I do that which may gar + her look at me,’ said the chivalrous youth. + </p> + <p> + He was not entirely without means, for the links of a gold chain which he + had brought from home went a good way in exchange, and though he had + spoken of being at his own charges, he had found himself compelled to live + as one of the train of the princesses, who were treated as the guests + first of the Duke of York, then of the Cardinal, who had given Sir Patrick + a sum sufficient to defray all possible expenses as far as Bourges, + besides having arranged for those of the journey with Suffolk whose rank + had been raised to that of a Marquis, in honour of his activity as proxy + for the King. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 6. THE PRICE OF A GOOSE + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘We would have all such offenders cut off, and we give + express charge that, in the marches through the country, + there be nothing compelled from the villages.’ + —King Henry V. +</pre> + <p> + The Marquis of Suffolk’s was a slow progress both in England and abroad, + with many halts both on account of weather and of feasts and festivals. + Cardinal Beaufort had hurried the party away from London partly in order + to make the match with Margaret of Anjou irrevocable, partly for the sake + of removing Eleanor of Scotland, the only maiden who had ever produced the + slightest impression on the monastic-minded Henry of Windsor. + </p> + <p> + When once out of London there were, however, numerous halts on the road,—two + or three days of entertainment at every castle, and then a long delay at + Canterbury to give time for Suffolk’s retainers, and all the heralds, + pursuivants, and other adjuncts of pomp and splendour, to join them. They + were the guests of Archbishop Stafford, one of the peace party, and a + friend of Beaufort and Suffolk, so that their entertainment was costly and + magnificent, as befitted the mediaeval notions of a high-born gentleman, + Primate of all England. A great establishment for the chase was kept by + almost all prelates as a necessity; and whenever the weather was + favourable, hunting and hawking could be enjoyed by the princesses and + their suite. Indeed Jean, if not in the saddle, was pretty certain to be + visiting the hawks all the morning, or else playing at ball or some other + sport with her cousins or some of the young gentlemen of Suffolk’s train, + who were all devoted to her. + </p> + <p> + Lady Drummond found that to try to win her to quieter occupations was in + vain. The girl would not even try to learn French from Father Romuald by + reading, though she would pick up words and phrases by laughing and + chattering with the young knights who chanced to know the language. But as + by this time Dame Lilias had learnt that there were bounds that princely + pride and instinct prevented from overpassing, she contented herself with + seeing that there was fit attendance, either by her daughter Annis, Sir + Patrick himself, or one or other of Lady Suffolk’s ladies. + </p> + <p> + To some degree Eleanor shared in her sister’s outdoor amusements, but she + was far more disposed to exercise her mind than her body. After having + pined in weariness for want of intellectual food, her opportunities were + delightful to her. Not only did she read with Father Romuald with intense + interest the copy of the bon Sire Jean Froissart in the original, which he + borrowed from the Archbishop’s library, but she listened with great zest + to the readings which the Lady of Suffolk extracted from her chaplains and + unwilling pages while the ladies sat at work, for the Marchioness, a + grandchild of Geoffrey Chaucer, had a strong taste for literature. + Moreover, from one of the choir Eleanor obtained lessons on the lute, as + well as her beloved harp, and was taught to train her voice, and sing from + ‘pricke-song,’ so that she much enjoyed this period of her journey. + </p> + <p> + Nothing could be more courteous and punctilious than the Marquis of + Suffolk to the two princesses, and indeed to every one of his own degree; + but there was something of the parvenu about him, and, unlike the Duke of + York or Archbishop Stafford, who were free, bright, and good-natured to + the meanest persons, he was haughty and harsh to every one below the line + of gentle blood, and in his own train he kept up a discipline, not too + strict in itself, but galling in the manner in which it was enforced by + those who imitated his example. By the time the suite was collected, + Christmas and the festival of St. Thomas a Becket were so near that it + would have been neglect of a popular saint to have left his shrine without + keeping his day. And after the Epiphany, though the party did reach Dover + in a day’s ride, a stormy period set in, putting crossing out of the + question, and detaining the suite within the massive walls of the castle. + </p> + <p> + At last, on a brisk, windless day of frost, the crossing to Calais was + effected, and there was another week of festivals spread by the + hospitality of the Captain of Calais, where everything was as English as + at Dover. When they again started on their journey, Suffolk severely + insisted on the closest order, riding as travellers in a hostile country, + where a misadventure might easily break the existing truce, although the + territories of the Duke of Burgundy, through which their route chiefly + lay, were far less unfavourable to the English than actual French + countries; indeed, the Flemings were never willingly at war with the + English, and some of the Burgundian nobles and knights had been on + intimate terms with Suffolk. Still, he caused the heralds always to keep + in advance, and allowed no stragglers behind the rearguard that came + behind the long train of waggons loaded with much kitchen apparatus, and + with splendid gifts for the bride and her family, as well as equipments + for the wedding-party, and tents for such of the troop as could not find + shelter in the hostels or monasteries where the slowly-moving party halted + for the night. It was unsafe to go on after the brief hours of daylight, + especially in the neighbourhood of the Forest of Ardennes, for wolves + might be near on the winter nights. It was thus that the first trouble + arose with Sir Patrick Drummond’s two volunteer followers. Ringan Raefoot + had become in his progress a very different looking being from the wild + creature who had come with ‘Geordie of the Red Peel,’ but there was the + same heart in him. He had endured obedience to the Knight of Glenuskie as + a Scot, and with the Duke of York and through England the discipline of + the troop had not been severe; but Suffolk, though a courtly, chivalrous + gentleman to his equals, had not the qualities of popularity, and chafed + his inferiors. + </p> + <p> + There were signs of confusion in the cavalcade as they passed between some + of the fertile fields of Namur, and while Suffolk was halting and about to + send a squire to the rear to interfere, a couple of his retainers hurried + up, saying, ‘My Lord, those Scottish thieves will bring the whole country + down on us if order be not taken with them.’ + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick did not need the end of the speech to gallop off at full speed + to the rear of all the waggons, where a crowd might be seen, and there was + a perfect Babel of tongues, rising in only too intelligible shouts of + rage. Swords and lances were flashing on one side among the horsemen, on + the other stones were flying from an ever-increasing number of + leather-jerkined men and boys, some of them with long knives, axes, and + scythes. + </p> + <p> + George Douglas’s high head seemed to be the main object of attack, and he + had Ringan Raefoot before him across his horse, apparently retreating, + while David, Malcolm, and a few more made charges on the crowd to guard + him. When he was seen, there was a cry of which he could distinguish + nothing but ‘Ringan! Geordie! goose—Flemish hounds.’ + </p> + <p> + Riding between, regardless of the stones, he shouted in the Burgundian + French he had learnt in his campaigns, to demand the cause of the attack. + The stones ceased, and the head man of the village, a stout peasant, came + forward and complained that the varlet, as he called Ringan, had been + stealing the village geese on their pond, and when they were about to do + justice on him, yonder man-at-arms had burst in, knocked down and hurt + several, and carried him off. + </p> + <p> + Before there had been time for further explanation, to Sir Patrick’s great + vexation, the Marshal of the troop and his guard came up, and the + complaint was repeated. George, at the same time, having handed Ringan + over to some others of the Scots, rode up with his head very high. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir Patrick Drummond,’ said the Marshal stiffly, ‘you know my Lord’s + rules for his followers, as to committing outrages on the villeins of the + country.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘We are none of my Lord of Suffolk’s following,’ began Douglas; but Sir + Patrick, determined to avoid a breach if possible, said— + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir Marshal, we have as yet heard but one side of the matter. If wrong + have been done to these folk, we are ready to offer compensation, but we + should hear how it has been—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Am I to see my poor laddie torn to bits, stoned, and hanged by these + savage loons,’ cried George, ‘for a goose’s egg and an old gander?’ + </p> + <p> + Of course his defence was incomprehensible to the Flemings, but on their + side a man with a bound-up head and another limping were produced, and the + head man spoke of more serious damage to others who could not appear, + demanding both the aggressors to be dealt with, i.e. to be hanged on the + next tree. + </p> + <p> + ‘These men are of mine, Master Marshal,’ said Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘My Lord can permit no violence by those under his banner,’ said the + Marshal stiffly. ‘I must answer it to him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Do so then,’ said Sir Patrick. ‘This is a matter for him.’ + </p> + <p> + The Marshal, who had much rather have disposed of the Scottish thieves on + his own responsibility, was forced to give way so far as to let the appeal + be carried to the Marquis of Suffolk, telling the Flemings, in something + as near their language as he could accomplish, that his Lord was sure to + see justice done, and that they should follow and make their complaint. + </p> + <p> + Suffolk sat on his horse, tall, upright, and angry. ‘What is this I hear, + Sir Patrick Drummond,’ said he, ‘that your miscreants of wild Scots have + been thieving from the peaceful peasant-folk, and then beating them and + murdering them? I deemed you were a better man than to stand by such deeds + and not give up the fellows to justice.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It were shame to hang a man for one goose,’ said Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘All plunder is worthy of death,’ returned the Englishman. ‘Your Border + law may be otherwise, but ‘tis not our English rule of honest men. And + here’s this other great lurdane knave been striking the poor rogues down + right and left! A halter fits both.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My Lord, they are no subjects of England. I deny your rights over them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Whoever rides in my train is under me, I would have you to know, sir.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hark ye, my Lord of Suffolk,’ said Sir Patrick, coming near enough to + speak in an undertone, ‘that lurdane, as you call him, is heir of a noble + house in Scotland, come here on a young man’s freak of chivalry. You will + do no service to the peace of the realms if you give him up to these + churls, for making in to save his servant.’ + </p> + <p> + Before Sir Patrick had done speaking, while Suffolk was frowning grimly in + perplexity, a wild figure, with blood on the face, rushed forth with a + limping run, crying ‘Let the loons hang me and welcome, if they set such + store by their lean old gander, but they shanna lay a finger on the + Master.’ + </p> + <p> + And he had nearly precipitated himself into the hands of the sturdy + rustics, who shouted with exultation, but with two strides Geordie caught + him up. ‘Peace, Ringan! They shall no more hang thee than me,’ and he + stood with one hand on Ringan’s shoulder and his sword in the other, + looking defiant. + </p> + <p> + ‘If he be a young gentleman masking, I am not bound to know it,’ said + Suffolk impatiently to Drummond; ‘but if he will give up that rascal, and + make compensation, I will overlook it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Who touches my fellow does so at his peril,’ shouted George, menacing + with his sword. + </p> + <p> + ‘Peace, young man!’ said Sir Patrick. ‘Look here, my Lord of Suffolk, we + Scots are none of your men. We need no favour of you English with our + allies. There be enough of us to make our way through these peasants to + the French border, so unless you let us settle the matter with a few + crowns to these rascallions, we part company.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The ladies were entrusted to my charge,’ began Lord Suffolk. + </p> + <p> + At that instant, however, both Jean and Eleanor came on the scene, riding + fast, having in truth been summoned by Malcolm, who shrewdly suspected + that thus an outbreak might be best averted. + </p> + <p> + It was Eleanor who spoke first. In spite of all her shyness, when her + blood was up, she was all the princess. + </p> + <p> + What is this, my Lord of Suffolk?’ she said. ‘If one of our following have + transgressed, it is the part of ourselves and of Sir Patrick Drummond to + see to it, as representing the King my brother.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Lady,’ replied Suffolk, bowing low and doffing his cap, ‘yonder + ill-nurtured knave hath been robbing the country-folk, and the—the + man-at-arms there not only refuses to give him up to justice, but has + hurt, well-nigh slain, some of them in violently taking him from them. + They ride in my train and I am responsible.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean broke in: ‘He only served the cowardly loons right. A whole crowd of + the rogues to hang one poor laddie for one goose! Shame on a gentleman for + hearkening to the foul-mouthed villains one moment. Come here, Ringan. + King Jamie’s sister will never see them harm thee.’ + </p> + <p> + Perhaps Suffolk was not sorry to see a way out of the perplexity. ‘Far be + it from a knight to refuse a boon to a fair lady in her selle, farther + still to <i>two</i> royal damsels. The lives are granted, so satisfaction + in coin be made to yon clamorous hinds.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I do not call it a boon but a right, said Eleanor gravely; ‘nevertheless + I thank you, my Lord Marquis.’ + </p> + <p> + George would have thrown himself at their feet, but Jean coldly said, + ‘Spare thanks, sir. It was for my brother’s right,’ and she turned her + horse away, and rode off at speed, while Eleanor could not help pausing to + say, ‘She is more blithe than she lists to own! Sir Patrick, what the + fellows claim must come from my uncle’s travelling purse.’ + </p> + <p> + George’s face was red. This was very bitter to him, but he could only say, + ‘It shall be repaid so soon as I have the power.’ + </p> + <p> + The peasants meanwhile were trying to make the best bargain they could by + representing that they were tenants of an abbey, so that the death of the + gander was sacrilegious on that account as well as because it was in Lent. + To this, however, Sir Patrick turned a deaf ear: he threw them a couple of + gold pieces, with which, as he told them, they were much better off than + with either the live goose or the dead Ringan. + </p> + <p> + Suffolk had halted for the mid-day rest and was waiting for him till this + matter was disposed of. ‘Sir Patrick Drummond,’ he said with some + ceremony, ‘this company of yours may be Scottish subjects, but while they + are riding with me I am answerable for them. It may be the wont in + Scotland, but it is not with us English, to let unnamed adventurers ride + under our banner.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The young man is not unnamed,’ said Sir Patrick, on his mettle. + </p> + <p> + ‘You know him?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I’ll no say, but I have an inkling. My son David kenn’d him and answered + for him when he joined himself to my following; nor has he hitherto done + aught to discredit himself.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What is his name, or the name he goes by?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘George Douglas.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘H’m! Your Scottish names may belong to any one, from your earls down to + your herdboys; and they, forsooth, are as like as not to call themselves + gentlemen.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And wherefore not, if theirs is gentle blood?’ said Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, now, Sir Patrick, stand not on your Scotch pride. Gentlemen all, if + you will, but you gave me to understand that this was none of your + barefoot gentlemen, and I ask if you can tell who he truly is?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have never been told, my Lord, and I had rather you put the question to + himself than to me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Call him then, an’ so please you.’ + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick saw no alternative save compliance; and he found Ringan + undergoing a severe rating, not unaccompanied by blows from the wood of + his master’s lance. The perfect willingness to die for one another was a + mere natural incident, but the having transgressed, and caused such a + serious scrape, made George very indignant and inflict condign punishment. + ‘Better fed than he had ever been in his life, the rogue’ (and he looked + it, though he muttered, ‘A bannock and a sup of barley brose were worth + the haill of their greasy beeves!’). ‘Better fed than ever before. + Couldn’t the daft loon keep the hands of him off poor folks’ bit goose? In + Lent, too!’ (by far the gravest part of the offence). + </p> + <p> + George did, however, transfer Ringan’s explanation to Sir Patrick, and + make some apology. A nest of goose eggs apparently unowned had been too + much for him, incited further by a couple of English horseboys, who were + willing to share goose eggs for supper, and let the Scotsman bear the wyte + of it. The goose had been nearer than expected, and summoned her kin; the + gander had shown fight; the geese had gabbled, the gooseherd and his kind + came to the rescue, the horseboys had made off; Ringan, impeded by his + struggle with the ferocious gander, was caught; and Geordie had come up + just in time to see him pricked with goads and axes to a tree, where a + halter was making ready for him. Of course, without asking questions, + George hurried to save him, pushing his horse among the angry crew, and + striking right and left, and equally of course the other Scots came to his + assistance. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick agreed that he could not have done otherwise, though better + things might have been hoped of Ringan by this time. + </p> + <p> + ‘But,’ said he, ‘there’s not an end yet of the coil. Here has my Lord of + Suffolk been speiring after your name and quality, till I told him he must + ask at you and not at me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Tell’d you the dour meddling Englishman my name?’ asked George. + </p> + <p> + ‘I told him only what ye told me yerself. In that there was no lie. But + bethink you, royal maidens dinna come to speak for lads without a cause.’ + </p> + <p> + George’s colour mounted high in his sunburnt, freckled cheek. + </p> + <p> + ‘Kens—ken they, trow ye, Sir Pate?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Cannie folk, even lassies, can ken mair than they always tell,’ said the + knight of Glenuskie. ‘Yonder is my Lord Marquis, as they ca’ him; so + bethink you weel how you comport yerself with him, and my counsel is to + tell him the full truth. He is a dour man towards underlings, whom he + views as made not of the same flesh and blood with himself, but he is the + very pink of courtesy to men of his own degree.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Set him up,’ quoth the heir of the Douglas, with a snort. ‘His own + degree, indeed! scarce even a knight’s son!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What he deems his own degree, then,’ corrected Sir Patrick; ‘but he holds + himself full of chivalry to them, and loves a spice of the errant knight; + ye may trust his honour. And mind ye,’ he added, laughing, ‘I’ve never + been told your name and quality.’ + </p> + <p> + Which the Master of Angus returned with an equally canny laugh. The young + man, as he approached the Marquis, drew his head up, straightened his tall + form, brushed off the dust that obscured the bloody heart on his breast, + and altogether advanced with a step and bearing far more like the great + Earl’s son than the man-at-arms of the Glenuskie following; his eyes + bespoke equality or more as they met those of William de la Pole, and yet + there was that in the glance which forbade the idea of insolence, so that + Suffolk, instead of remaining seated rose to meet him and took him aside, + standing as they talked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir Squire,’ he said, ‘for such I understand your degree in chivalry to + be.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have not won my spurs,’ said George. + </p> + <p> + ‘It is not our rule to take to foreign courts gentlemen from another realm + unknown to us,’ proceeded Suffolk, with much civility; ‘therefore, unless + any vow of chivalry binds you, I should be glad to know who it is who does + my banner the honour of riding in its company for a time. If a secret, it + is safe with me.’ + </p> + <p> + George gave his name. + </p> + <p> + ‘That is the name of one of the chief nobles in Scotland,’ said Suffolk. + ‘Do I see before me his son?’ George bowed. + </p> + <p> + ‘Then, my Lord Douglas, am I permitted to ask wherefore this mean + disguise? Is it for some vow of chivalry, or for that which is the guerdon + of chivalry?’ the Marquis added in a lower, softer tone, which, however, + extremely chafed the proud young Scot, all the more that he felt himself + blushing. + </p> + <p> + ‘My Lord,’ he said, ‘I am not bound to render a reason to any save my + father, from whom I hope for letters shortly.’ + </p> + <p> + To his further provocation Suffolk smiled meaningly, and answered— + </p> + <p> + ‘I understand. But if my Lord Douglas would honour my suite by assuming + the place that befits him, I should be happy that aught of mine should + serve—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I am beholden to you, my Lord, for the offer,’ replied George, somewhat + roughly. ‘Whatever I make use of must be my father’s or my own. All I + crave of you is to keep my secret, and not make me the common talk. Have I + your licence to depart?’ + </p> + <p> + Wherewith, tall, irate, and shamefaced, the Master of Angus stalked away + to meet David Drummond, to whom he confided his disgusts. + </p> + <p> + ‘The parlous fulebody! As though I were like to make myself a mere sport + for ballad-mongers, such as Lady Elleen is always mooning after; or as if + I would stoop to borrow a following of the English blackguard, to bolster + up my state like King Herod in a mystery play. If my father lists, he may + send me out a band, but the Douglas shall have Douglas’s men, or none at + all.’ + </p> + <p> + David approved the sentiment, but added— + </p> + <p> + ‘Ye could win to Jeanie if ye took your right place.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What good would that do me while she is full of her fine daffing, + singing, clacking, English knights, that would only gibe at the red-haired + Scot? Let her wait to see what the Red Douglas’s hand can do in time of + need! But, Davie, you that can speak to her, let her know how deeply I + thank her for what she did even now on my behalf, or rather on puir + Ringan’s, and that I am trebly bound to her service though I make no + minstrel fule’s work.’ + </p> + <p> + David delivered his message, but did not obtain much by it for his + friend’s satisfaction, for Jeanie only tossed her head and answered— + </p> + <p> + ‘Does the gallant cock up his bonnet because he thinks it was for his + sake. It was Elleen’s doing there, firstly; and next, wadna we have done + the like for the meanest of Jamie’s subjects?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Dinna credit her, Davie,’ said Eleanor. ‘Ye should have seen her start in + her saddle, and wheel round her palfrey at Malcolm’s first word.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It wasna for him,’ replied Jean hotly. ‘They dinna hang the like of him + for twisting a goose’s neck; it was for the puir leal laddie; and ye may + tak’ that to him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Shall I, Elleen?’ asked David, with a twinkle in his eye of cousinly + teasing. + </p> + <p> + ‘An’ ye do not, I shall proclaim ye in the lists at Nanci as a corbie + messenger and mansworn squire, unworthy of your spurs,’ threatened Jeanie, + in all good humour however. + </p> + <p> + Suffolk, baffled in his desire to patronise the young Master of Angus, + examined both Sir Patrick and Lady Drummond as far as their caution would + allow, telling that the youth had confessed his rank and admitted the + cause—making inquiry whether the match would be held suitable in + Scotland, and why it had not taken place there—a matter difficult to + explain, since it did not merely turn upon the young lady’s ambition—which + would have gone for nothing—but on the danger to the Crown of + offending rival houses. Suffolk had a good deal about him of the flashy + side of chivalry, and loved its brilliance and romance; he was an + honourable man, and the weak point about him was that he never understood + that knighthood should respect men of meaner birth. He was greatly + flattered by the idea of having the eldest son of the great Earl of Angus + riding as an unknown man-at-arms in his troop, and on the way likewise to + the most chivalrous of kings. His scheme would have been to equip the + youth fully with horse and arms, and at some brilliant tourney see him + carry all before him, like Du Gueselin in his boyhood, and that the eclat + of the affair should reflect itself upon his sponsor. But there were two + difficulties in the way—the first that the proud young Scot showed + no intention of being beholden to any Englishman, and secondly, that the + tall, ungainly youth did not look as if he had attained to the full + strength or management of his own limbs; and though in five or ten years’ + time he might be a giant in actual warfare, he did not appear at all + likely to be a match for the highly-trained champions of the tilt-yard. + Moreover, he was not a knight as yet, and on sounding Sir Patrick it was + elicited that he was likely to deem it high treason to be dubbed by any + hand save that of his King or his father. + </p> + <p> + So the Marquis could only feel sagacious, and utter a hint or two before + the ladies which fell the more short, since he was persuaded, by Eleanor’s + having been the foremost in the defence, that she was the object of the + quest; and he now and then treated her to hints which she was slow to + understand, but which exasperated while they amused her sister. + </p> + <p> + The journey was so slow that it was not until the fourth week in Lent that + they were fairly in Lorraine. It had of course been announced by couriers, + and at Thionville a very splendid herald reached them, covered all over + with the blazonry of Jerusalem and the Two Sicilies, to say nothing of + Provence and Anjou. He brought letters from King Rene, explaining that he + and his daughters were en route from Provence, and he therefore designated + a nunnery where he requested that the Scottish princesses and their ladies + would deign to be entertained, and a monastery where my Lord Marquis of + Suffolk and his suite would be welcomed, and where they were requested to + remain till Easter week, by which time the King of France, the Dauphin, + and Dauphiness would be near at hand, and there could be a grand entrance + into Nanci. Of course there was nothing to be done but to obey though the + Englishmen muttered that the delay was in order to cast the expense upon + the rich abbeys, and to muster all the resources of Lorraine and Provence + to cover the poverty of the many-titled King. + </p> + <p> + The Abbey where the gentlemen were lodged was so near Nanci that it was + easy to ride into the city and make inquiries whether any tidings had + arrived from Scotland; but nothing had come from thence for either the + princesses, Sir Patrick, or Geordie of the Red Peel, so that the strange + situation of the latter must needs continue as long as he insisted on + being beholden for nothing to the English upstart, as he scrupled not to + call Lord Suffolk, whose new-fashioned French title was an offence in + Scottish ears. + </p> + <p> + The ladies on their side had not the relaxation of these expeditions. The + Abbey was a large and wealthy one, but decidedly provincial. Only the Lady + Abbess and one sister could speak ‘French of Paris,’ the others used a + dialect so nearly German that Lady Suffolk could barely understand them, + and the other ladies, whose French was not strong, could hold no + conversation with them. + </p> + <p> + To insular minds, whether Scottish or English, every deviation of the + Gallican ritual from their own was a sore vexation. If Lady Drummond had + devotion enough not to be distracted by the variations, the young ladies + certainly had not, and Jean very decidedly giggled during some of the most + solemn ceremonies, such as the creeping to the cross—the large + carved cross in the middle of the graveyard, to which all in turn went + upon their knees on Good Friday and kissed it. + </p> + <p> + Last year, at this season, they had been shut up in their prison-castle, + and had not shared in any of these ceremonies; and Eleanor tried to think + of King Henry and Sister Esclairmonde, and how they were throwing their + hearts into the great thoughts of the day, and she felt distressed at + being infected by Jean’s suppressed laughter at the movements of the fat + Abbess, and at the extraordinary noises made by the younger nuns with + clappers, as demonstrations against Judas on the way to the Easter + Sepulchre. + </p> + <p> + She was so much shocked at herself that she wanted to confess; but Father + Romuald had gone with the male members of the party, and the chaplain did + not half understand her French, though he gave her absolution. + </p> + <p> + Meantime all the nuns were preparing Easter eggs, whereof there was a + great exchange the next day, when the mass was as splendid as the + resources of the Abbey could furnish, and all were full of joy and + congratulation, the sense of oneness for once inspiring all. + </p> + <p> + Moreover, after mass, Sir Patrick and an Englishman rode over with tidings + that King Rene had sent a messenger, who was on the Tuesday to guide them + all to a glade where the King hoped to welcome the ladies as befitted + their rank and beauty, and likewise to meet the royal travellers from + Bourges, so that all might make their entry into Nanci together. + </p> + <p> + The King himself, it was reported, did nothing but ride backwards and + forwards between Nanci and the convent where he had halted, arranging the + details of the procession, and of the open-air feast at the rendezvous + upon the way. + </p> + <p> + ‘I hope,’ said Lady Suffolk, ‘that King Rene’s confections will not be as + full of rancid oil as those of the good sisters. I know not which was more + distasteful—their Lenten Fast or their Easter Feast. We have, + certes, done our penance this Lent!’ + </p> + <p> + To which the rest of the ladies could not but agree, though Lady Drummond + felt it somewhat treasonable to the good nuns, their entertainers; and + both she and Eleanor recollected how differently Esclairmonde would have + felt the matter, and how little these matters of daily fare would have + concerned her. + </p> + <p> + ‘To-day we shall see her!’ exclaimed Eleanor, springing to the floor, as, + early on a fine spring morning, the ladies in the guest-chamber of the + nunnery began to bestir themselves at the sound of one of the many convent + bells. ‘They are at Toul, and we shall meet this afternoon. I have not + slept all night for thinking of it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No, and hardly let me sleep,’ said Jean, slowly sitting up in bed. ‘Thou + hast waked me so often that I shall be pale and heavy-eyed for the + pageant.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Little fear of that, my bonnie bell,’ said old Christie, laughing. + </p> + <p> + ‘Besides,’ said Eleanor, ‘nobody will fash themselves to look at us in the + midst of the pageant. There will be the King to see, and the bride. Oh, I + wish we were not to ride in it, and could see it instead at our ease.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Thou wast never meant for a princess,’ said Jean; ‘Christie, Annis, for + pity’s sake, see till her. She is busking up her hair just as was gude + enough for the old nuns, but no for kings and queens.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I hate the horned cap, in which I feel like a cow, and methought Meg wad + feel the snood a sight for sair een,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Meg indeed! Thou must frame thy tongue to Madame la Dauphine.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Before the lave of them, but not with sweet Meg herself.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Our sister behoves to have learnt what suits her station, and winna bide + sic ways from an ower forward sister. Dinna put us all to shame, and make + the folk trow we came from some selvage land,’ said Jean, tossing her + head. + </p> + <p> + ‘Hast ever seen me carry myself unworthy of King James’s daughter?’ + proudly demanded Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, now, bairnies, fash not yoursells that gate,’ interfered old + Christie; ‘nae fear but Lady Elleen will be douce and canny enow when + folks are there to see. She kens what fits a king’s daughter.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean made a little hesitation over kirtles and hoods, but fortunately + ladies, however royal, had no objection to wearing the same robes twice, + and both she and her sister were objects to delight the eyes of the + crowding and admiring nuns when they mounted their palfreys in the + quadrangle, and, attended by the Lady of Glenuskie and her daughter, rode + forth with the Marchioness of Suffolk at the great gateway to join the + cavalcade, headed by Suffolk and Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + After about two miles’ riding on a woodland road they became aware of + fitful strains of music and a continuous hum of voices, heard through the + trees and presently a really beautiful scene opened before them, as the + trees seemed to retreat, so as to unfold a wide level space, further + enclosed by brilliant tapestry hangings, their scarlet, blue, gold and + silver hues glittering in an April sun, and the fastenings concealed by + garlands of spring flowers. An awning of rich gold embroidery on a green + ground was spread so as to shelter a cloth glittering with plate and + bestrewn with flowers; horses, in all varieties of ornamental housings, + were being led about; there was a semicircle of musicians in the rear; + and, as soon as the guests came in sight, there came forward, doffing his + embroidered and jewelled cap, a gentleman of middle stature and of + exceeding grace and courtesy, whose demeanour, no less than the attendance + around him, left no doubt that this was no other than Rene, Duke of Anjou + and of Lorraine, Count of Provence, and King of the Two Sicilies and of + Jerusalem. + </p> + <p> + ‘Welcome,’ he exclaimed in French, ‘welcome, fair and royal maidens; + welcome, noble lord, the representative of our dear brother and son of + England. Deign on your journey to partake of the humble and rural fare of + the poor minstrel shepherd.’ + </p> + <p> + Wherewith the music broke out in strains of welcome from the grove, with + voices betweenwhiles Rene himself assisted each princess to dismount, and + respectfully kissed her on the cheek as she stood on the ground. Then, + taking a hand of each, he led them to a great chestnut tree, the shade of + whose branches was assisted by hangings of blue embroidered with white, + beneath which cushions, mantles, and seats were spread, and a bevy of + ladies in bright garments stood. From these came forward two beautiful + young girls, with fair complexions and flowing golden hair, scarcely + confined by the bands whence transparent veils descended. King Rene + presented them as his two daughters, Yolande and Margaret, to the two + Scottish maidens, and there were kindly as well as courtly embraces on + either side. The Lady of Glenuskie, as a king’s grand-daughter, with Annis + and Lady Suffolk, had likewise been led up to take their places; the four + royal maidens were seated together. Yolande, the most regularly beautiful, + but with an anxious look on her face, talked to Eleanor of her journey; + Margaret, who had one of those very simple, innocent-looking child-faces + that sometimes form the mask of immense energy of character, was more + absent and inattentive to her duties as hostess; moreover, she and Jean + did not understand one another’s language so well as did the other two. + Delicate little cakes, and tall Venice glasses, spirally ornamented, and + containing light wines, were served to them on the knee by a tall, large, + fair-haired youth, who was named to them as the Duke Sigismund, of Alsace + and the Tyrol. + </p> + <p> + Jean had time to look about, and heartily wish that her beautiful flaxen + hair was loose, and not encumbered with the rolled headgear with two + projecting horns, against which Elleen had rebelled; since York and even + London were evidently behind the fashion. Margaret’s hair was bound with a + broad band of daisies, and Yolande’s with violets, both in allusion to + their names, Yolande being the French corruption of Violante, her + Provencal name, in allusion to the golden violet. Jean thought of the + Scottish thistle, and studied the dresses, tight-fitting ‘cotte hardis’ of + bright, deep, soft, rose colour, edged with white fur, and white skirts + embroidered with their appropriate flowers. She wondered how soon this + could be imitated, casting a few glances at Duke Sigismund, who stood + waiting, as if desirous of attracting Yolande’s attention. Eleanor, on the + other hand, even while answering Yolande, had a feeling as if she had + arrived at the completion of the very vision which she had imagined on the + dreary tower of Dunbar. Here was the warm spring sun, shining on a scene + of unequalled beauty and brilliancy, set in the spring foliage and + blossom, whence, as if to rival the human performers, gushes of + nightingales’ song came in every interval. Hearing Eleanor’s eager + question whether that were the nightingale whose liquid trillings she + heard, King Rene realised that the Scottish maidens knew not the note, and + signed to the minstrels to cease for a time, then came and sat on a + cushion beside the young lady, and enjoyed her admiration. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah!’ she said, ‘that is the king of the minstrel birds.’ + </p> + <p> + He smiled. ‘The royal lady then has her orders and ranks for the birds.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh yes. If the royal eagle is the king, and the falcon is the true + knight, the nightingale and mavis, merle and lark, are the minstrels. And + the lovely seagull, oh, how call you it?—with the long white + floating wings rising and falling, is the graceful dancer.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Guifette,’ Rene gave the word, ‘or in Provence, Rondinel della mar—hirondelle + de la mer!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Swallow! Ah, the pilgrim birds, who visit the Holy Land.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Lady, you should be of our court of the troubadours,’ said Rene; ‘your + words should be a poem.’ + </p> + <p> + He was called away at the moment, and craved her licence so politely that + the chivalrous minstrel king seemed to Elleen all she had dreamt of. The + whole was perfect, nothing wanting save that for which her heart was all + the time beating high, the presence of her beloved sister Margaret. It was + as if a scene out of a romance of fairyland had suddenly taken reality, + and she more than once closed her eyes and squeezed her hands to try + whether she was awake. + </p> + <p> + A fanfaron of trumpets came on the wind, and all were on the alert, while + Eleanor’s heart throbbed so that she could hardly stand, and caught at + Margaret’s arm, as she murmured with a gasp, ‘My sister! My sister!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! you are happy to meet once more,’ said Margaret. ‘The saints only + know whether Yolande and I shall ever see one another’s faces again when + once I am carried away to your dreary England.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘England is not mine, lady,’ said Eleanor, rather sharply. ‘We reckon the + English as our bitterest foes.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You have come with an Englishman though,’ said Margaret, ‘whom I am to + take for my husband,’ and she laughed a gay innocent laugh. A grizzled old + knight, whom I am not like to mistake for my true spouse. Have you seen + him? What like is he?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The gentlest and sweetest of kings,’ returned Eleanor; ‘as fond of all + that is good and fair and holy as is your own royal father.’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret coughed a little. ‘My husband should be a gallant warlike + knight,’ she said, ‘such as was this king’s father.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, see! cried Eleanor. ‘I saw the glitter of the spears through the + trees. There’s another blast of the trumpets! Oh! oh! it is a gallant + sight! If only Jamie, my little brother, could see it! It stirs one’s + blood.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah yes, Elleen,’ cried Jean. ‘This is something to have come for.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And Margaret, sweet Madge,’ repeated Eleanor to herself, in her native + Scotch, while King Rene’s trumpets, harps, and hautbois burst forth with + an answering peal, so exciting her that her yellow-brown eyes sparkled and + the colour rose in her cheeks, giving her a strange beauty full of eager + spirit. Duke Sigismund turned and gazed at her in surprise, and an old + herald who was waiting near observed, ‘Is that the daughter of the captive + King of Scotland? She has his very countenance and bearing.’ + </p> + <p> + The trumpeters and other attendants, bearing the blue-lilied banner of + France, appeared among the trees, and dividing, formed a lane for the + advance of the royal personages. King Rene went forward to meet them, + foremost, so as to be ready to hold the stirrup for his sister the Queen + of France. Duke Sigismund seemed about to give his hand to the Infanta + Violante, as the Provencaux called Yolande, but she was beforehand with + him, linking her arm into Jean’s, while Margaret took Eleanor’s, and said + in her ear, ‘The great awkward German! He is come here to pay his court to + Yolande, but she will none of him. She has better hopes.’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor hardly attended, for her whole soul was bent on the party + arriving. King Charles, riding on a handsome bay horse, closely followed + by a conveyance such as was called in England a whirlicote, from which the + Queen was handed out by her brother, and then, on a sorrel palfrey, in a + blue gold-embroidered riding-suit—could that be Margaret of + Scotland? The long reddish-yellow hair and the tall figure had a familiar + look. King Rene was telling her something as he helped her to alight, and + with one spring, regardless of all, and of all ceremony, she sprang + forward. ‘My wee Jeanie! My Elleen! My titties! Mine ain wee things,’ she + cried in her native tongue, as she embraced them by turns, as if she would + have devoured them, with a gush of tears. + </p> + <p> + Though these were times of great state and ceremony, yet they were also + very demonstrative times, when tears and embracings were expected of near + kindred; and, indeed, the King and Queen were equally occupied with their + brother and nieces; but presently Eleanor heard a low voice observe, with + a sort of sarcastic twang, ‘If Madame has sufficiently satiated her + tenderness, perhaps she will remember the due of others.’ Margaret started + as if stung, and Eleanor, looking up, beheld a face, young but sharp, and + with a keen, hard, set look in the narrow eyes, contracted brow, and thin + lips, that made her feel as though the serpent had found his way into her + paradise. Hastily turning, Margaret presented her sisters to her husband, + who bowed, and kissed each with those strange thin lips, that again made + Eleanor shudder, perhaps because of his compliment, ‘We are graced by + these ladies, in whom we have another Madame la Dauphine, as well as an + errant beauty.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean appropriated the last words, but Elleen felt sure that the earlier + ones were ironical, both to her and to the Dauphiness, on whose cheeks + they brought a flush. The two kings, however, turned to receive the + sisters, and nothing could be kinder than the tone of King Charles and + Queen Marie towards the sisters of their good daughter, as they termed the + Dauphiness, who on her side was welcomed by Rene as the sweet niece, + sharer of his tastes, who brought minstrelsy and poetry in her train. + </p> + <p> + ‘Trust her for that, my fair uncle,’ said her husband in a cold, dry tone. + </p> + <p> + All the royal personages sat down on the cushions spread on the grass to + the ‘rural fare,’ as King Rene called it, which he had elaborately + prepared for them, while the music sounded from the trees in welcome. + </p> + <p> + All was, as the kind prince announced, without ceremony, and he placed + Lord Suffolk, as the representative of Henry VI., next to the young + Infanta Margaret, and contrived that the Dauphiness should sit between her + two sisters, whose hands she clasped from time to time within her own in + an ecstasy of delight, while inquiries came from time to time, low + breathed in her native tongue, for wee Mary and Jamie and baby Annaple. + ‘The very sound of your tongues is music to my lugs,’ she said. ‘And how + much mair when ye speak mine ain bonnie Scotch, sic as I never hear save + by times when one archer calls to another. Jeanie, you favour our mother. + ‘Tis gude for ye! I am blithe one of ye is na like puir Marget!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Dinna say that,’ cried Jean, in an access of feeling. ‘’Tis hame, and + it’s hame to see sic a sonsie Scots face—and it minds me of my + blessed father.’ + </p> + <p> + It was true that Margaret and Eleanor both were thorough Scotswomen, and + with the expressive features, the auburn colouring, and tall figures of + their father; but there was for the rest a melancholy contrast between + them, for while Elleen had the eager, hopeful, lively healthfulness of + early youth, giving a glow to her countenance and animation to the lithe + but scarcely-formed figure, Margaret, with the same original mould, had + the pallor and puffiness of ill-health in her complexion, and a largeness + of growth more unsatisfactory than leanness, and though her face was + lighted up and her eyes sparkled with the joy of meeting her sisters, + there were lines about the brow and round the mouth ill suited to her age, + which was little over twenty years. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 7. THE MINSTREL KING’S COURT + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Where throngs of knights and barons bold, + In weeds of peace, high triumphs hold, + With store of ladies, whose bright eyes + Rain influence, and judge the prize + Of wit or arms, while both contend + To win her grace whom all commend.’—L’Allegro. +</pre> + <p> + The whole of the two Courts had to be received in the capital of Lorraine + in full state under the beautiful old gateway, but as mediaeval pageants + are wearisome matters this may be passed over, though it was exceptionally + beautiful and poetic, owing to the influence of King Rene’s taste, and it + perfectly dazzled the two Scottish princesses—though, to tell the + truth, they were somewhat disappointed in the personal appearance of their + entertainers, who did not come up to their notion of royalty. Their father + had been a stately and magnificent man; their mother a beautiful woman. + Henry VI. was a tall, well-made, handsome man, with Plantagenet fairness + and regularity of feature and a sweetness all his own; but both these + kings were, like all the house of Valois, small men with insignificant + features and sallow complexions. Rene, indeed, had a distinction about him + that compensated for want of beauty, and Charles had a good-natured, easy, + indolent look and gracious smile that gave him an undefinable air of + royalty. Rene’s daughters were both very lovely, but their beauty came + from the other side of the house, with the blood of Charles the Great, + through their mother, the heiress of Lorraine. + </p> + <p> + There was a curious contrast between the brothers-in-law, Charles, when + dismounting at the castle gate, not disguising his weariness and relief + that it was over, and Rene, eager and anxious, desirous of making all his + bewildering multitude of guests as happy as possible, while the Dauphin + Louis stood by, half interested and amused, half mocking. He was really + fond of his uncle, though in a contemptuous superior sort of manner, + despising his religious and honourable scruples as mere simplicity of + mind. + </p> + <p> + Rene of Anjou has been hardly dealt with, as is often the case with + princes upright, religious, and chivalrous beyond the average of their + time, yet without the strength or the genius to enforce their rights and + opinions, and therefore thrust aside. After his early unsuccessful wars + his lands of Provence and Lorraine were islands of peace, prosperity, and + progress, and withal he was an extremely able artist, musician, and poet, + striving to revive the old troubadour spirit of Provence, and everywhere + casting about him an atmosphere of refinement and kindliness. + </p> + <p> + The hall of his hotel at Nanci was a beautiful place, with all the + gorgeous grace of the fifteenth century, and here his guests assembled for + supper soon after their arrival, all being placed as much as possible + according to rank. Eleanor found herself between a deaf old Church + dignitary and Duke Sigismund, on whose other side was Yolande, the + Infanta, as the Provencals called the daughter of Rene; while Jean found + the Dauphin on one side of her and a great French Duke on the other. Louis + amused himself with compliments and questions that sometimes nettled her, + sometimes pleased her, giving her a sense that he might admire her beauty, + but was playing on her simplicity, and trying to make her betray the + destitution of her home and her purpose in coming. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor, on the other hand, found her cavalier more simple than herself. + In fact, he properly belonged to the Infanta, but she paid no attention to + him, nor did the Bishop try to speak to the Scottish princess. Sigismund’s + French was very lame, and Eleanor’s not perfect, but she had a natural + turn for languages, and had, in the convent, picked up some German, which + in those days had many likenesses to her own broad Scotch. They made one + another out, between the two languages, with signs, smiles, and laughter, + and whereas the subtilties along the table represented the entire story of + Sir Gawain and his Loathly Lady, she contrived to explain the story to + him, greatly to his edification; and they went on to King Arthur, and he + did his best to narrate the German reading of Sir Parzival. The + difficulties engrossed them till the rose-water was brought in silver + bowls to wash their fingers, on which Sigismund, after observing and + imitating the two ladies, remarked that they had no such Schwarmerci in + Deutschland, and Yolande looked as if she could well believe it, while + Elleen, though ignorant of the meaning of his word, laughed and said they + had as little in Scotland. + </p> + <p> + There was still an hour of daylight to come, and moon-rise would not be + far off, so that the hosts proposed to adjourn to the garden, where fresh + music awaited them. + </p> + <p> + King Rene was an ardent gardener. His love of flowers was viewed as one of + his weaknesses, only worthy of an old Abbot, but he went his own way, and + the space within the walls of his castle at Nanci was lovely with bright + spring flowers, blossoming trees, and green walks, where, as Lady Suffolk + said, her grandfather could have mused all day and all night long, to the + sound of the nightingales. + </p> + <p> + But what the sisters valued it for was that they could ramble away + together to a stone bench under the wall, and there sit at perfect ease + together and pour out their hearts to one another. Margaret, indeed, + touched them as they leant against her as if to convince herself of their + reality, and yet she said that they knew not what they did when they put + the sea between themselves and Scotland, nor how sick the heart could be + for its bonnie hills. + </p> + <p> + ‘O gin I could see a mountain top again, I feel as though I could lay me + down and die content. What garred ye come daundering to these weary flats + of France?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, sister, Scotland is not what you mind it when our blessed father + lived!’ + </p> + <p> + And they told her how their lives had been spent in being hurried from one + prison-castle to another. + </p> + <p> + ‘Prison-castles be not wanting here,’ replied Margaret with a sigh. Then, + as Elleen held up a hand in delight at the thrill of a neighbouring + nightingale, she cried, ‘What is yon sing-song, seesaw, gurgling bird to + our own bonnie laverock, soaring away to the sky, without making such a + wark of tuning his pipes, and never thinking himself too dainty and tender + for a wholesome frost or two! So Jamie sent you off to seek for husbands + here, did he? Couldna ye put up with a leal Scot, like Glenuskie there?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There were too many of them,’ said Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘And not ower leal either,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Lealty is a rare plant ony gate,’ sighed Margaret, ‘and where sae little + is recked of our Scots royalty, mayhap ye’ll find that tocherless lasses + be less sought for than at hame. Didna I see thee, Elleen, clavering with + that muckle Archduke that nane can talk with?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘He is come here a-courting Madame Yolande, with his father’s goodwill, + for Alsace and Tyrol be his, mountains that might be in our ain Hielands, + they tell me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Methougnt,’ said Eleanor, ‘she scunnered from him, as Jeanie does at—shall + I say whom?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And reason gude,’ said Margaret. ‘She has a joe of her ain, Count Ferry + de Vaudemont, that is the heir male of the line, and a gallant laddie. At + the great joust the morn methinks ye’ll see what may well be sung by + minstrels, and can scarce fail to touch the heart of a true troubadour, as + is my good uncle Rene.’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret became quite animated, and her sisters pressed her to tell them + if she knew of any secret; but she playfully shook her head, and said that + if she did know she would not mar the romaunt that was to be played out + before them. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay,’ said Eleanor, ‘we have a romaunt of our own. May I tell, Jeanie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Who recks?’ replied Jean, with a little toss of her head. + </p> + <p> + Thus Eleanor proceeded to tell her sister what—since the adventure + of the goose—had gone far beyond a guess as to the tall, red-haired + young man-at-arms who had ridden close behind David Drummond. + </p> + <p> + ‘Douglas, Douglas, tender and true,’ exclaimed Margaret. ‘He loves you so + as to follow for weeks, nay, months, in this guise without word or look. + Oh, Jeanie, Jeanie, happy lassie, did ye but ken it! Nay, put not on that + scornful mou’. It sorts you not weel, my bairn. He is of degree befitting + a Stewart, and even were he not, oh, sisters, sisters, better to wed with + a leal loving soul in ane high peel-tower than to bear a broken heart to a + throne!’ and she fell into a convulsive fit of choked and bitter weeping, + which terrified her sisters. + </p> + <p> + At the sound of a lute, apparently being brought nearer, accompanied with + footsteps, she hastily recovered herself, and rose to her feet, while a + smile broke out over her face, as the musician, a slender, graceful + figure, appeared on the path in the moonlight. + </p> + <p> + ‘Answering the nightingales, Maitre Alain?’ she said. + </p> + <p> + ‘This is the court of nightingales, Madame,’ he replied. ‘It is + presumption to endeavour to rival them even though the heart be torn like + that of Philomel.’ Wherewith he touched his lute, and began to sing from + his famous idyll— + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Ainsi mon coeur se guermentait + De la grande douleur qu’il portait, + En ce plaisant lieu solitaire + Ou un doux ventelet venait, + Si seri qu’on le sentait + Lorsque la violette mieux flaire.’ +</pre> + <p> + Again, as Eleanor heard the sweet strains, and saw the long shadows of the + trees and the light of the rising moon, it was like the attainment of her + dreamland; and Margaret proceeded to make known to her sisters Maitre + Alain Chartier, the prince of song, adding, ‘Thou, too, wast a songster, + sister Elleen, even while almost a babe. Dost sing as of old?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have brought my father’s harp,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! I must hear it,’ she cried with effusion. ‘The harp. It will be his + voice again.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Madame! Madame! Madame la Dauphine. Out here! Ever reckless of dew—ay, + and of waur than dew.’ + </p> + <p> + These last words were added in Scotch, as a tall, dark-cloaked figure + appeared on the scene from between the trees. Margaret laughed, with a + little annoyance in her tone, as she said, ‘Ever my shadow, good Madame, + ever wearying yourself with care. Here, sisters, here is my trusty and + well-beloved Dame de Ste. Petronelle, who takes such care of me that she + dogs my footsteps like a messan.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And reason gude,’ replied the lady. ‘Here is the muckle hall all alight, + and this King Rene, as they call him, twanging on his lute, and but that + the Seigneur Dauphin is talking to the English Lord on some question of + Gascon boundaries, we should have him speiring for you. I saw the eye of + him roaming after you, as it was.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘His eye seeking me!’ cried Margaret, springing up from her languid + attitude with a tone like exultation in her voice, such as evoked a low + sigh from the old dame, as all began to move towards the castle. She was + the widow of a Scotch adventurer who had won lands and honours in France; + and she was now attached to the service of the Dauphiness, not as her + chief lady—that post was held by an old French countess—but + still close enough to her to act as her guardian and monitor whenever it + was possible to deal with her. + </p> + <p> + The old lady, in great delight at meeting a compatriot, poured out her + confidences to Dame Lilias of Glenuskie. Infinitely grieved and annoyed + was she when, early as were the ordinary hours of the Court of Nanci, it + proved that the Dauphiness had called up her sisters an hour before, and + taken them across the chace which surrounded the castle to hear mass at a + convent of Benedictine nuns. + </p> + <p> + It was perfectly safe, though only a tirewoman and a page followed the + Dauphiness, and only Annis attended her two sisters, for the grounds were + enclosed, and King Rene’s domains were far better ruled and more peaceful + than those of the princes who despised him. It was an exquisite spring + morning, with grass silvery with dew and enamelled with flowers, birds + singing ecstatically on every branch, squirrels here and there racing up a + trunk. Margaret was in joyous spirits, and almost danced between her + sisters. Eleanor was amazed at the luxuriant beauty of the scene, and + could not admire enough. Jean, though at first a little cross at the early + summons, could not but be infected with their delight, and the three + laughed and frolicked together with almost childish glee in the delight of + their content. + </p> + <p> + The great, gentle-eyed, long-horned kine were being driven in at the + convent-yard to be milked by the lay-sisters; at another entrance, + peasants, beggars, and sick were congregating; the bell from the + lace-works spire rang out, and the Dauphiness led the way to the gateway, + where, at her knock on the iron-studded door, a lay-sister looked through + the wicket. + </p> + <p> + ‘Good sister, here are some early pilgrims to the shrine of St. + Scolastique,’ she began. + </p> + <p> + ‘To the other gate,’ said the portress hastily. Margaret’s face twinkled + with fun. ‘I wad fain take a turn with the beggar crew,’ she said to her + sisters in Scotch; ‘but it might cause too great an outcry if I were + kenned. Commend me to the Mere St. Antoine,’ she added in French, ‘and + tell her that the Dauphiness would fain hear mass with her.’ + </p> + <p> + The portress cast an anxious doubtful glance, but being apparently + convinced, cried out for pardon, while hastily unlocking her door, and + sending a message to the Abbess. + </p> + <p> + As they entered the cloistered quadrangle the nuns in black procession + were on their way to mass, but turned aside to receive their visitors. + Margaret knelt for a moment for the blessing and kiss of the Abbess, then + greeted the nun whom she had mentioned, but begged for no further + ceremony, and then was led into church. + </p> + <p> + It was a brief festival mass, and was not really over before she, with a + restlessness of which her sisters began to be conscious, began to rise and + make her way out. A nun followed and entreated her to stay and break her + fast, but she would accept nothing save a draught of milk, swallowed + hastily, and with signs of impatience as her sisters took their turn. + </p> + <p> + She walked quickly, rather as one guilty of an escapade, again surprising + her sisters, who fancied the liberty of a married princess illimitable. + </p> + <p> + Jean even ventured to ask her why she went so fast, ‘Would the King of + France be displeased?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘He! Poor gude sire Charles! He heeds not what one does, good or bad; no, + not the murdering of his minion before his eyes,’ said Margaret, half + laughing. + </p> + <p> + ‘Thy husband, would he be angered?’ pressed on Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘My husband? Oh no, it is not in the depth and greatness of is thoughts to + find fault with his poor worm,’ said Margaret, a strange look, half of + exultation, half of pain, on her face. ‘Ah! Jeanie, woman, none kens in + sooth how great and wise my Dauphin is, nor how far he sees beyond all + around him, so that he cannot choose but scorn them and make them his + tools. When he has the power, he will do more for this poor realm of + France than any king before him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘As our father would have done for Scotland,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Then he tells thee of his plans?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Me!’ said Margaret, with the suffering look returning. ‘How should he + talk to me, the muckle uncouthie wife that I am, kenning nought but a + wheen ballads and romaunts—not even able to give him the heir for + whom he longs,’ and she wrung her hands together, ‘how can I be aught but + a pain and grief to him!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, but thou lovest him?’ said Jean, over simply. + </p> + <p> + ‘Lassie!’ exclaimed Margaret hotly, ‘what thinkest thou I am made of? How + should a wife not love her man, the wisest, canniest prince in + Christendom, too! Love him! I worship him, as the trouveres say, with all + my heart, and wad lay down my life if I could win one kind blush of his + eye; and yet—and yet—such a creature am I that I am ever + wittingly or unwittingly transgressing these weary laws, and garring him + think me a fool, or others report me such,’ clenching her hands again. + </p> + <p> + ‘Madame de Ste. Petronelle?’ asked Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘She! Oh no! She is a true loyal Lindsay, heart and soul, dour and + wearisome; but she would guard me from every foe, and most of all, as she + is ever telling me, from mine ain self, that is my worst enemy. Only she + sets about it in such guise that, for very vexation, I am driven farther! + No, it is the Countess de Craylierre, who is forever spiting me, and + striving to put whatever I do in a cruel light, if I dinna walk after her + will—hers, as if she could rule a king’s daughter!’ + </p> + <p> + And Margaret stamped her foot on the ground, while a hot flush arose in + her cheeks. Her sisters, young girls as they were, could not understand + her moods, either of wild mirth, eager delight in poetry and music, + childish wilfulness and petulant temper or deep melancholy, all coming in + turn with feverish alternation and vehemence. As the ladies approached the + castle they were met by various gentlemen, among whom was Maitre Alain + Chartier, and a bandying of compliments and witticisms began in such rapid + French that even Eleanor could not follow it; but there was something in + the ring of the Dauphiness’s hard laugh that pained her, she knew not why. + </p> + <p> + At the entrance they found the chief of the party returning from the + cathedral, where they had heard mass, not exactly in state, but publicly. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ha! ha! good daughter,’ laughed the King, ‘I took thee for a slug abed, + but it is by thy errant fashion that thou hast cheated us.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have been to mass at St Mary’s,’ returned Margaret, ‘with my sisters. I + love the early walk across the park.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No wonder,’ came from between the thin lips of the Dauphin, as his keen + little eye fell on Chartier. Margaret drew herself up and vouchsafed not + to reply. Jean marvelled, but Eleanor felt with her, that she was too + proud to defend herself from the insult. Madame de Ste. Petronelle, + however, stepped forward and began: ‘Madame la Dauphine loves not + attendance. She made her journey alone with Mesdames ses soeurs with no + male company, till she reached home.’ + </p> + <p> + But before the first words were well out of the good lady’s mouth Louis + had turned away, with an air of the most careless indifference, to a + courtier in a long gown, longer shoes, and a jewelled girdle, who became + known to the sisters as Messire Jamet de Tillay. Eleanor felt indignant. + Was he too heedless of his wife to listen to the vindication. + </p> + <p> + Madame de Ste. Petronelle took the Lady of Glenuskie aside and poured out + her lamentations. That was ever the way, she said, the Dauphiness would + give occasion to slanderers, by her wilful ways, and there were those who + would turn all she said or did against her, poisoning the ear of the + Dauphin, little as he cared. + </p> + <p> + ‘Is he an ill man to her?’ asked Dame Lilias little prepossessed by his + looks. + </p> + <p> + ‘He! Madame, mind you an auld tale of the Eatin wi’ no heart in his body! + I verily believe he and his father both were created like that giant. No + that the King is sair to live with either, so that he can eat and drink + and daff, and be let alone to take his ease. I have seen him; and my gude + man and them we kenned have marked him this score of years; and whether + his kingdom were lost or won, whether his best friends were free or bound, + dead or alive, he recked as little as though it were a game of chess, so + that he can sit in the ingle neuk at Bourges and toy with Madame de + Beaute, shameless limmer that she is! and crack his fists with yon viper, + Jamet de Tillay, and the rest of the crew. But he’ll let you alone, and + has a kindly word for them that don’t cross him—and there be those + that would go through fire and water for him. He is no that ill! But for + his son, he has a sneer and a spite such as never his father had. He is + never a one to sit still and let things gang their gate; but he has as + little pity or compassion as his father, and if King Charles will not stir + a finger to hinder a gruesome deed, Dauphin Louis will not spare to do it + so that he can gain by it, and I trow verily that to give pain and sting + with that bitter tongue of his is joy to him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Then is there no love between him and our princess?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Alack, lady, there is love, but ‘tis all on one side of the house. I + doubt me whether Messire le Dauphin hath it in him to love any living + creature. I longed, when I saw your maidens, that my poor lady had been as + bonnie as her sister Joanna; but mayhap that would not have served her + better. If she were as dull as the Duchess of Brittany—who they say + can scarce find a word to give to a stranger at Nantes—she might + even anger him less than she does with her wit and her books and her + verses, sitting up half the night to read and write rondeaux, forsooth!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Her blessed father’s own daughter!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That may be; but how doth it suit a wife? It might serve here, where + every one is mad after poesy, as they call it; but such ways are in no + good odour with the French dames, who never put eye to book, pen to paper, + nor foot to ground if they can help it; and when she behoves to gang off + roaming afoot, as she did this morn, there’s no garring the ill-minded + carlines believe that there’s no ill purpose behind.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It is scarce wise.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Yet to hear her, ‘tis such walking and wearing herself out that keeps the + life in her and alone gives her sleep. My puir bairn, worshipping the very + ground her man sets foot on, and never getting aught but a gibe or a girn + from him, and, for the very wilfulness of her sair heart, ever putting + herself farther from him!’ + </p> + <p> + Such was the piteous account that Madame de Ste. Petronelle (otherwise + Dame Elspeth Johnstone) gave, and which the Lady of Glenuskie soon + perceived to be only too true during the days spent at Nanci. To the two + young sisters the condition of things was less evident. To Margaret their + presence was such sunshine, that they usually saw her in her highest, most + flighty, and imprudent spirits, taking at times absolute delight in + shocking her two duennas; and it was in this temper that, one hot noon + day, coming after an evening of song and music, finding Alain Chartier + asleep on a bench in the garden, she declared that she must kiss the mouth + from which such sweet strains proceeded, and bending down, imprinted so + light a kiss as not to waken him, then turned round, her whole face + rippling with silent laughter at the amusement of Jean and Margaret of + Anjou, Elleen’s puzzled gravity, and the horror and dismay of her elder + ladies. But Dame Lilias saw what she did not—a look of triumphant + malice on the face of Jamet de Tillay. Or at other times she would sit + listening, with silent tears in her eyes, to plaintive Scottish airs on + Eleanor’s harp, which she declared brought back her father’s voice to her, + and with it the scent of the heather, and the very sight of Arthur’s Seat + or the hills of Perth. Elleen had some sudden qualms of heart lest her + sister’s blitheness should be covering wounds within; but she was too + young to be often haunted by such thoughts in the delightful surroundings + in which that Easter week was spent—the companionship of their + sister and of the two young Infantas of Anjou, as well as all the charm of + King Rene’s graceful attention. Eleanor had opened to her fresh stores of + beauty, exquisite illuminations, books of all kinds—legend, history, + romance, poetry—all freely displayed to her by her royal host, who + took an elderly man’s delight in an intelligent girl; nor, perhaps, was + the pleasure lessened by the need of explaining to Archduke Sigismund, in + German ever improving, that which he could not understand. There was a + delightful freedom about the Court—not hard, rugged, always on the + defence, like that of Scotland; nor stiffly ecclesiastical, as had been + that of Henry of Windsor; but though there was devotion every morning, + there was for the rest of the day holiday-making according to each one’s + taste—not hawking, for the ‘bon roi Rene’ was merciful to the birds + in nesting time, for which he was grumbled and laughed at by the young + nobles, and it may be feared by Jean, who wanted to exhibit Skywing’s + prowess; but there was riding at the ring, and jousting, or long rides in + the environs, minstrelsy in the gardens, and once a graceful ballet of the + King’s own composition; and the evenings, sometimes in-doors, sometimes + out-of-doors, were given to song and music. Altogether it was a land of + enchantment to most, whether gaily or poetically inclined. + </p> + <p> + Only there were certain murmurs by the rugged Scots and fierce Gascons + among the guests. George observed to David Drummond that he felt as if + this was a nest of eider-ducks, all down and fluff. Davie responded that + it was like a pasteboard town in a mystery play, and that he longed to + strike at it with his good broadsword. The English squire who stood by, in + his turn compared it to a castle of flummery and blanc-manger. A French + captain of a full company declared that he wished he had the plundering of + it; and a fierce-looking mountaineer of the Vosges of Alsace growled that + if the harping old King of Nowhere flouted his master, Duke Sigismund, + maybe they should have a taste of plunder. + </p> + <p> + There was actually to be a tournament on the Monday, the day before the + wedding, and a first tournament was a prodigious event in the life of a + young lady. Jean was in the utmost excitement, and never looked at her own + pretty face of roses and lilies in the steel mirror without comparing it + with those of the two Infantas in the hope of being chosen Queen of + Beauty; but, to her great disappointment, King Rene prudently ordained + that there should be no such competition, but that the prizes should be + bestowed by his sister, the Queen of France. + </p> + <p> + The Marquess of Suffolk requested Sir Patrick to convey to young Douglas a + free offer of fitting him out for the encounter, with armour and horse if + needful, and even of conferring knighthood on him, so that he might take + his place on equal terms in the lists. + </p> + <p> + ‘He would like to do it, the insolent loon!’ was Geordie’s grim comment. + ‘Will De la Pole dare to talk of dubbing the Red Douglas! When I bide his + buffet, it shall be in another sort. When I take knighthood, it shall be + from my lawful King or my father.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘So I shall tell him,’ replied Sir Patrick, ‘and I deem you wise, for + there be tricks of French chivalry that a man needs to know ere he can + acquit himself well in the lists; and to see you fail would scarce raise + you in the eyes of your lady.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘More like they would find too much earnest in the midst of their sham?’ + returned Geordie. ‘You had best tell your English Marquis, as he calls + himself, that he had better not trust a lance in a Scotsman hand, if he + wouldna have all the shams that fret me beyond my patience about their + ears.’ + </p> + <p> + This was not exactly what Sir Patrick told the Marquis; though he was far + from disapproving of the resolution. He kept an eye on this strange + follower, and was glad to see that there was no evil or licence in his + conduct, but that he chiefly consorted with David and a few other young + squires to whom this week, so delightful to the ladies, was inexpressibly + wearisome. + </p> + <p> + Tournaments have been described, so far as the nineteenth century can + describe them, so often that no one wishes to hear more of their details. + These had nearly reached their culmination in the middle of the fifteenth + century. Defensive armour had become highly ornamental and very cumbrous, + so that it was scarcely possible for the champions to do one another much + harm, except that a fall under such a weight was dangerous. Thus it was + only an exercise of skill in arms and horsemanship on which the ladies + gazed as they sat in the gallery around Queen Marie, the five young + princesses together forming, as the minstrels declared, a perfect wreath + of loveliness. The Dauphiness, with a flush on her cheek and an eager look + on her face, her tall form, and dress more carefully arranged than usual, + looked well and princely; Eleanor, very like her, but much developed in + expression and improved in looks since she left home, and a beauty of her + own; but the palm lay between the other three—Yolande, tall, grave, + stately, and anxious, with darker blue eyes and brown hair than her + sister, who, with her innocent childish face, showing something of the + shyness of a bride, sat somewhat back, as if to conceal herself between + Yolande and Jean, who was all excitement, her cheeks flushed, and her + sunny hair seeming to glow with a radiance of its own. Duke Sigismund was + among the defenders, in a very splendid suit of armour, made in Italy, and + embossed in that new taste of the Cinquecento that was fast coming in. + </p> + <p> + The two kings began with an amicable joust, in which Rene had the best of + it. Then they took their seats, and as usual there was a good deal of + riding one against the other at the lists, and shivering of lances; while + some knights were borne backwards, horse and all, others had their helmets + carried off; but Rene, who sat in great enjoyment, with his staff in hand, + between his sister and her husband, King Charles, had taken care that all + the weapons should be blunted. Sigismund, a tall, large, strongly made + man, was for some time the leading champion. Perhaps there was an + understanding that the Lion of Hapsburg and famed Eagle of the Tyrol was + to carry all before him and win, in an undoubted manner, the prize of the + tourney, and the hand of the Infanta Yolande. Certainly the colour rose + higher and higher in her delicate cheek, but those nearest could see that + it was not with pleasure, for she bit her lip with annoyance, and her eyes + wandered in search of some one. + </p> + <p> + Presently, in a pause, there came forward on a tall white horse a + magnificently tall man, in plain but bright armour, three allerions or + beakless eagles on his breast, and on his shield a violet plant, with the + motto, Si douce est la violette. The Dauphiness leant across her sister + and squeezed Yolande’s hand vehemently, as the knight inclined his lance + to the King, and was understood to crave permission to show his prowess. + Charles turned to Rene, whose good-humoured face looked annoyed, but who + could not withhold his consent. The Dauphiness, whose vehement excitement + was more visible than even Yolande’s, whispered to Eleanor that this was + Messire Ferry de Vaudemont, her true love, come to win her at point of the + lance. + </p> + <p> + History is the parent of romance, and romance now and then becomes + history. It is an absolute and undoubted fact that Count Frederic or Ferry + de Vaudemont, the male representative of the line of Charles the Great, + did win his lady-love, Yolande of Anjou, by his good lance within the + lists, and that thus the direct descent was brought eventually back to + Lorraine, though this was not contemplated at the time, since Yolande had + then living both a brother and a nephew, and it was simply for her own + sake that Messire Ferry, in all the strength and beauty that descended to + the noted house of Guise, was now bearing down all before him, touching + shield after shield, only to gain the better of their owners in the + encounter. Yolande sat with a deep colour in her cheeks, and her hands + clasped rigidly together without a movement, while the Lorrainer + spectators, with a strong suspicion who the Knight of the Violet really + was, and with a leaning to their own line, loudly applauded each victory. + </p> + <p> + King Rene, long ago, had had to fight for his wife’s inheritance with this + young man’s father, who, supported by the strength of Burgundy, had + defeated and made him prisoner, so that he was naturally disinclined to + the match, and would have preferred the Hapsburg Duke, whose Alsatian + possessions were only divided from his own by the Vosges; but his generous + and romantic spirit could not choose but be gained by the proceeding of + Count Ferry, and the mute appeal in the face and attitude of his + much-loved daughter. + </p> + <p> + He could not help joining in the applause at the grace and ease of the + young knight, till by and by all interest became concentrated on the last + critical encounter with Sigismund. + </p> + <p> + Every one watched almost breathlessly as the big heavy Austrian, mounted + on a fresh horse, and the slim Lorrainer in armour less strong but less + weighty, had their meeting. Two courses were run with mere splintering of + lance; at the third, while Rene held his staff ready to throw if signs of + fighting <i>a l’outrance</i> appeared, Ferry lifted his lance a little, + and when both steeds recoiled from the clash, the azure eagle of the Tyrol + was impaled on the point of his lance, and Sigismund, though not losing + his saddle, was bending low on it, half stunned by the force of the blow. + Down went Rene’s warder. Loud were the shouts, ‘Vive the Knight of the + Violet! Victory to the Allerions!’ + </p> + <p> + The voice of Rene was as clear and exulting as the rest, as the heralds, + with blast of trumpet, proclaimed the Chevalier de la Violette the victor + of the day, and then came forward to lead him to the feet of the Queen of + France. His helmet was removed, and at the face of manly beauty that it + revealed, the applause was renewed; but as Marie held out the prize, a + splendidly hilted sword, he bowed low, and said, ‘Madame, one boon alone + do I ask for my guerdon.’ And withal, he laid the blue eagle on his lance + at the feet of Yolande. + </p> + <p> + Rene was not the father to withstand such an appeal. He leapt from his + chair of state, he hurried to Yolande in her gallery, took her by the + hand, and in another moment Ferry had sprung from his horse, and on the + steps knight and lady, in their youthful glory and grace, stood hand in + hand, all blushes and bliss, amid the ecstatic applause of the multitude, + while the Dauphiness shed tears of joy. Thus brilliantly ended the first + tournament witnessed by the Scottish princesses. Eleanor had been most + interested on the whole in Duke Sigismund, and had exulted in his + successes, and been sorry to see him defeated, but then she knew that + Yolande dreaded his victory, and she suspected that he did not greatly + care for Yolande, so that, since he was not hurt, and was certainly the + second in the field, she could look on with complacency. + </p> + <p> + Moreover, at the evening’s dance, when Margaret and Suffolk, Ferry and + Yolande stood up for a stately pavise together, Sigismund came to Eleanor, + and while she was thinking whether or not to condole with him, he shyly + mumbled something about not regretting—being free—the Dauphin, + her brother, enduring a beaten knight. It was all in a mixture of French + and German, mostly of the latter, and far less comprehensible than usual, + unless, indeed, maidenly shyness made her afraid to understand or to seem + to do so. He kept on standing by her, both of them, mute and embarrassed, + not quite unconscious that they were observed, perhaps secretly derided by + some of the lookers-on. The first relief was when the Dauphiness came and + sat down by her sister, and began to talk fast in French, scarce heeding + whether the Duke understood or answered her. + </p> + <p> + One question he asked was, who was the red-faced young man with stubbly + sunburnt hair, and a scar on his cheek, who had appeared in the lists in + very gaudy but ill-fitting armour, and with a great raw-boned, snorting + horse, and now stood in a corner of the hall with his eyes steadily fixed + on the Lady Joanna. + </p> + <p> + ‘So!’ said Sigismund. ‘That fellow is the Baron Rudiger von Batchburg Der + Schelm! How has he the face to show himself here?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Is he one of your Borderers—your robber Castellanes?’ asked + Margaret. + </p> + <p> + ‘Even so! His father’s castle of Balchenburg is so cunningly placed on the + march between Elsass and Lothringen that neither our good host nor I can + fully claim it, and these rogues shelter themselves behind one or other of + us till it is, what they call in Germany a Rat Castle, the refuge of all + the ecorcheurs and routiers of this part of the country. They will bring + us both down on them one of these days, but the place is well-nigh past + scaling by any save a gemsbock or an ecorcheur!’ + </p> + <p> + Jean herself had remarked the gaze of the Alsatian mountaineer. It was the + chief homage that her beauty had received, and she was somewhat mortified + at being only viewed as part of the constellation of royalty and beauty + doing honour to the Infantas. She believed, too, that if G he could have + brought her out in as effective and romantic a light as that in which + Yolande had appeared, and she was in some of her moods hurt and angered + with him for refraining, while in others she supposed sometimes that he + was too awkward thus to venture himself, and at others she did him the + justice of believing that he disdained to appear in borrowed plumes. + </p> + <p> + The wedding was by no means so splendid an affair as the tournament, as, + indeed, it was merely a marriage by proxy, and Yolande and her Count of + Vaudemont were too near of kin to be married before a dispensation could + be procured. + </p> + <p> + The King and Queen of France would leave Nanci to see the bride partly on + her way. The Dauphin and his wife were to tarry a day or two behind, and + the princesses belonged to their Court. Sir Patrick had fulfilled his + charge of conducting them to their sister, and he had now to avail himself + of the protection of the King’s party as far as possible on the way to + Paris, where he would place Malcolm at the University, and likewise meet + his daughter’s bridegroom and his father. + </p> + <p> + Dame Lilias did not by any means like leaving her young cousins, so long + her charge, without attendants of their own; but the Dauphiness gave them + a tirewoman of her own, and undertook that Madame de Ste. Petronelle + should attend them in case of need, as well as that she would endeavour to + have Annis, when Madame de Terreforte, at her Court as long as they were + there. They also had a squire as equerry, and George Douglas was bent on + continuing in that capacity till his outfit from his father arrived, as it + was sure to do sooner or later. + </p> + <p> + Margaret knew who he was, and promised Sir Patrick to do all in her power + for him, as truly his patience and forbearance well deserved. + </p> + <p> + It was a very sorrowful parting between the two maidens and the Lady of + Glenuskie, who for more than half a year had been as a mother to them, + nay, more than their own mother had ever been; and bad done much to + mitigate the sharp angles of their neglected girlhood by her influence. In + a very few months more she would see James, and Mary, and the ‘weans’; and + the three sisters loaded her with gifts, letters, and messages for all. + Eleanor promised never to forget her counsel, and to strive not to let the + bright new world drive away all those devout feelings and hopes that + Mother Clare and King Henry had inspired, and that Lady Drummond had done + her best to keep up. + </p> + <p> + Duke Sigismund had communicated to Sir Patrick his intention of making a + formal request to King James for the hand of the Lady Eleanor. He was to + find an envoy to make his proposal in due form, who would join Sir Patrick + at Terreforte after the wedding was over, so as to go with the party to + Scotland. + </p> + <p> + Meantime, with many fond embraces and tears, Lady Drummond took leave of + her princesses, and they owned themselves to feel as if a protecting wall + had been taken away in her and her husband. + </p> + <p> + ‘It is folly, though, thus to speak,’ said Jean, ‘when we have our sister, + and her husband, and his father, and all his Court to protect us.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘We ought to be happy,’ said Eleanor gravely. ‘Outside here at Nanci, it + is all that my fancy ever shaped, and yet—and yet there is a strange + sense of fear beyond.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, talk not that gate,’ cried Jean, ‘as thou wilt be having thy gruesome + visions!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No; it is not of that sort,’ returned Eleanor. ‘I trow not! It may be + rather the feeling of the vanity of all this world’s show.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, for mercy’s sake, dinna let us have clavers of that sort, or we shall + have thee in yon nunnery!’ exclaimed Jean. ‘See this girdle of Maggie’s, + which she has given me. Must I not make another hole to draw it up enough + for my waist?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Jean herself was much disappointed when Margaret, with great regret, told + her that the Dauphin had to go out of his way to visit some castles on his + way to Chalons sur Marne, and that he could not encumber his hosts with so + large a train as the presence of two royal ladies rendered needful. They + were, therefore, to travel by another route, leading through towns where + there were hostels. Madame de Ste. Petronelle was to go with them, and an + escort of trusty Scots archers, and all would meet again in a fortnight’s + time. + </p> + <p> + All sounded simple and easy, and Margaret repeated, ‘It will be a troop + quite large enough to defend you from all ecorcheurs; indeed, they dare + not come near our Scottish archers, whom Messire, my husband, has told off + for your escort. And you will have your own squire,’ she added, looking at + Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘That’s as he lists,’ said Jean scornfully. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, Jeanie, Jeanie, thou mayst have to rue it if thou turn’st lightly + from a leal heart.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I’m not damsel-errant of romance, as thou and Elleen would fain be,’ said + Jean. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay,’ said Margaret, ‘love is not mere romance. And oh, sister, credit + me, a Scots lassie’s heart craves better food than crowns and coronets. + Hard and unco’ cold be they, where there is no warmth to meet the yearning + soul beneath, that would give all and ten times more for one glint of a + loving eye, one word from a tender lip.’ Again she had one of those + hysteric bursts of tears, but she laughed herself back, crying, ‘But what + is the treason wifie saying of her gudeman—her Louis, that never yet + said a rough word to his Meg?’ + </p> + <p> + Then came another laugh, but she gathered herself up at a summons to come + down and mount. + </p> + <p> + She was tenderly embraced by all, King Rene kissing her and calling her + his dear niece and princess of minstrelsy, who should come to him at + Toulouse and bestow the golden violet. + </p> + <p> + She rode away, looking back smiling and kissing her hand, but Eleanor’s + eyes grew wide and her cheeks pale. + </p> + <p> + ‘Jean,’ she murmured, low and hoarsely, ‘Margaret’s shroud is up to her + throat.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hoots with thy clavers,’ exclaimed Jeanie in return. ‘I never let thee + sing that fule song, but Meg’s fancies have brought the megrims into thine + head! Thou and she are pair.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That we shall be nae longer,’ sighed Eleanor. ‘I saw the shroud as clear + as I see yon cross on the spire.’ + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 8. STINGS + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Yet one asylum is my own, + Against the dreaded hour; + A long, a silent, and a lone, + Where kings have little power.’—SCOTT. +</pre> + <p> + At Chalons, the Sieur de Terreforte and his son Olivier, a very quiet, + stiff, and well-trained youth, met Sir Patrick and the Lady of Glenuskie. + Terreforte was within the province of Champagne, and as long as the Court + remained at Chalons the Sieur felt bound to remain in attendance on the + King—lodging at his own house, or hotel, as he called it, in the + city. Dame Lilias did not regret anything which gave her a little more + time with her daughter, and enabled Annis to make a little more + acquaintance with her bridegroom and his family before being left alone + with them. Moreover, she hoped to see something more of her cousins the + princesses. + </p> + <p> + But they came not. The Dauphin and his wife arrived from their excursion + and took up their abode in the Castle of Surry le Chateau, at a short + distance from thence and thither went the Lady of Glenuskie with her + husband to pay her respects, and present the betrothed of her daughter. + </p> + <p> + Margaret was sitting in a shady nook of the walls, under the shade of a + tall, massive tower, with a page reading to her, but in that impulsive + manner which the Court of France thought grossiere and sauvage; she ran + down the stone stairs and threw herself on the neck of her cousin, + exclaiming, however, ‘But where are my sisters?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Are they not with your Grace? I thought to find them here!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay! They were to start two days after us, with an escort of archers, + while we visited the shrine of St. Menehould. They might have been here + before us,’ exclaimed Margaret, in much alarm. ‘My husband thought our + train would be too large if they went with us.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘If we had known that they were not to be with your Grace, we would have + tarried for them,’ said Dame Lilias. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, cousin, would that you bad!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Mayhap King Rene and his daughter persuaded them to wait a few days.’ + </p> + <p> + That was the best hope, but there was much uneasiness when another day + passed and the Scottish princesses did not appear. Strange whispers, + coming from no one knew where, began to be current that they had + disappeared in company with some of those wild and gay knights who had met + at the tournament at Nanci. + </p> + <p> + In extreme alarm and indignation, Margaret repaired to her husband. He was + kneeling before the shrine of the Lady in the Chapel of Surry, telling his + beads, and he did not stir, or look round, or relax one murmur of his + Aves, while she paced about, wrung her hands, and vainly tried to control + her agitation. At last he rose, and coldly said, ‘I knew it could be no + other who thus interrupted my devotions.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My sisters!’ she gasped. + </p> + <p> + ‘Well, what of them?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Do you know what wicked things are said of them—the dear maids? + Ah!’—as she saw his strange smile—‘you have heard! You will + silence the fellows, who deserve to have their tongues torn out for + defaming a king’s daughters.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Verily, ma mie,’ said Louis, ‘I see no such great improbability in the + tale. They have been bred up to the like, no doubt a mountain kite of the + Vosges is a more congenial companion than a chevalier bien courtois.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You speak thus simply to tease your poor Margot,’ she said, pleading yet + trembling; ‘but I know better than to think you mean it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘As my lady pleases,’ he said. + </p> + <p> + ‘Then will I send Sir Patrick with an escort to seek them at Nanci and + bring them hither?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Where is this same troop to come from?’ demanded Louis. + </p> + <p> + ‘Our own Scottish archers, who will see no harm befall my blessed father’s + daughters.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ha! say you so? I had heard a different story from Buchan, from the + Grahams, the Halls. Revenge is sweet—as your mother found it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The murderers had only their deserts.’ + </p> + <p> + Louis shrugged his shoulders, ‘That is as their sons may think.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No one would be so dastardly as to wreak vengeance on two young helpless + maids,’ cried Margaret. ‘Oh! sir, help me; what think you?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Madame knows better than I do the spirit alike of her sisters and of her + own countrymen.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, nay, Monsieur, husband, do but help me! My poor sisters in this + strange land! You, who are wiser than all, tell me what can have become of + them?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What can I say, Madame? Love—love of the minstrel kind seems to run + in the family. You all have supped full thereof at Nanci. If report said + true, there was a secret lover in their suite. What so likely as that the + May game should have become earnest?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But, sir, we are accountable. My sisters were entrusted to us.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Not to me,’ said Louis. ‘If the boy, your brother, expected me to find + husbands and dowers for a couple of wild, penniless, feather-pated + damsels-errant, he expected far too much. I know far too well what are + Scotch manners and ideas of decorum to charge myself with the like.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir, do you mean to insult me?’ demanded Margaret, rising to the full + height of her tall stature. + </p> + <p> + ‘That is as Madame may choose to fit the cap,’ he said, with a bow; ‘I + accuse her of nothing,’ but there was an ironical smile on his thin lips + which almost maddened her. + </p> + <p> + ‘Speak out; oh, sir, tell me what you dare to mean!’ she said, with a + stamp of her foot, clasping her hands tightly. He only bowed again. + </p> + <p> + ‘I know there are evil tongues abroad,’ said Margaret, with a desperate + effort to command her voice; ‘but I heeded them no more than the midges in + the air while I knew my lord and husband heeded them not! But—oh! + say you do not.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Have I said that I did?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Then for a proof—dismiss and silence that foul-slandering wretch, + Jamet de Tillay.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘A true woman’s imagination that to dismiss is to silence,’ he laughed. + </p> + <p> + ‘It would show at least that you will not brook to have your wife defamed! + Oh! sir, sir,’ she cried, ‘I only ask what any other husband would have + done long ago of his own accord and rightful anger. Smile not thus—or + you will see me frenzied.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Smiles best befit woman’s tears,’ said Louis coolly. ‘One moment for your + sisters, the next for yourself.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! my sisters! my sisters! Wretch that I am, to have thought of my + worthless self for one moment. Ah! you are only teasing your poor Margot! + You will act for your own honour and theirs in sending out to seek them!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘My honour and theirs may be best served by their being forgotten.’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret became inarticulate with dismay, indignation, disappointment, as + these envenomed stings went to her very soul, further pointed by the curl + of Louis’s thin lips and the sinister twinkle of his little eyes. Almost + choked, she stammered forth the demand what he meant, only to be answered + that he did not pretend to understand the Scottish errant nature, and + pointing to a priest entering the church, he bade her not make herself + conspicuous, and strolled away. + </p> + <p> + Margaret’s despair and agony were inexpressible. She stood for some + minutes leaning against a pillar to collect her senses. Then her first + thought was of consulting the Drummonds, and she impetuously dashed back + to her own apartments and ordered her palfrey and suite to be ready + instantly to take her to Chalons. + </p> + <p> + Madame la Dauphine’s palfreys were all gone to Ghalons to be shod. In + fact, there were some games going on there, and trusting to the easy-going + habits of their mistress, almost all her attendants had lounged off + thither, even the maidens, as well as the pages, who felt Madame de Ste. + Petronelle’s sharp eyes no longer over them. + </p> + <p> + ‘Tell me,’ said Margaret, to the one lame, frightened old man who alone + seemed able to reply to her call, ‘do you know who commanded the escort + which were with my sisters, the Princesses of Scotland?’ + </p> + <p> + The old man threw up his hands. How should he know? ‘The escort was of the + savage Scottish archers.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I know that; but can you not tell who they were—nor their + commander?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! Madame knows that their names are such as no Christian ears can + understand, nor lips speak!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I had thought it was the Sire Andrew Gordon who was to go with them. He + with the blue housings on the dapple grey.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No, Madame; I heard the Captain Mercour say Monsieur le Dauphin had other + orders for him. It was the little dark one—how call they him?—ah! + with a more reasonable name—Le Halle, who led the party of Mesdames. + Madame! Madame! let me call some of Madame’s women!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘No, no,’ gasped Margaret, knowing indeed that none whom she wished to see + were within call. ‘Thanks, Jean, here—now go,’ and she flung him a + coin. + </p> + <p> + She knew now that whatever had befallen her sisters had been by the + connivance if not the contrivance of her husband, unwilling to have the + charge and the portioning of the two penniless maidens imposed upon him. + And what might not that fate be, betrayed into the hands of one who had so + deadly a blood-feud with their parents! For Hall was the son of one of the + men whose daggers had slain James I., and whose crime had been visited + with such vindictive cruelty by Queen Joanna. The man’s eyes had often + scowled at her, as if he longed for vengeance—and thus had it been + granted him. + </p> + <p> + Margaret, with understanding to appreciate Louis’s extraordinary ability, + had idolised him throughout in spite of his constant coldness and the + satire with which he treated all her higher tastes and aspirations, + continually throwing her in and back upon herself, and blighting her + instincts wherever they turned. She had accepted all this as his + superiority to her folly, and though the thwarted and unfostered + inclinations in her strong unstained nature had occasioned those + aberrations and distorted impulses which brought blame on her, she had + accepted everything hitherto as her own fault, and believed in, and adored + the image she had made of him throughout. Now it was as if her idol had + turned suddenly into a viper in her bosom, not only stinging her by + implied acquiescence in the slanders upon her discretion, if not upon her + fair fame, but actually having betrayed her innocent sisters by means of + the deadly enemy of their family—to what fate she knew not. + </p> + <p> + To act became an immediate need to the unhappy Dauphiness at once, as the + only vent to her own misery, and because she must without loss of time do + something for the succour of her young sisters, or ascertain their fate. + </p> + <p> + She did not spend a moment’s thought on the censure any imprudent measure + of her own might bring on her, but hastily summoning the only tirewoman + within reach, she exchanged her blue and gold embroidered robe for a dark + serge which she wore on days of penance, with a mantle and hood of the + same, and, to Linette’s horror and dismay, bade her attend her on foot to + the Hotel de Terreforte, in Chalons. + </p> + <p> + Linette was in no position to remonstrate, but could only follow, as the + lady, wrapped in her cloak, descended the steps, and crossed the empty + hall. The porter let her pass unquestioned, but there were a few guards at + the great gateway, and one shouted, ‘Whither away, pretty Linette?’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret raised her hood and looked full at him, and he fell back. He knew + her, and knew that Madame la Dauphine did strange things. The road was + stony and bare and treeless, unfrequented at first, and it was very + sultry, the sun shining with a heavy melting heat on Margaret’s weighty + garments; but she hurried on, never feeling the heat, or hearing Linette’s + endeavours to draw her attention to the heavy bank of gray clouds tinged + with lurid red gradually rising, and whence threatening growls of thunder + were heard from time to time. She really seemed to rush forward, and poor, + panting Linette toiled after her, feeling ready to drop, while the way was + as yet unobstructed, as the two beautiful steeples of the Cathedral and + Notre Dame de l’Epine rose before them; but after a time, as they drew + nearer, the road became obstructed by carts, waggons, donkeys, crowded + with country-folks and their wares, with friars and ragged beggars, all + pressing into the town, and jostling one another and the two + foot-passengers all the more as rain-drops began to fall, and the thunder + sounded nearer. + </p> + <p> + Margaret had been used to walking, but it was all within parks and + pleasances, and she was not at all used to being pushed about and jostled. + Linette knew how to make her way far better, and it was well for them that + their dark dresses and hoods and Linette’s elderly face gave the idea of + their being votaresses of some sacred order, and so secured them from + actual personal insult; but as they clung together they were thrust aside + and pushed about, while the throng grew thicker, the streets narrower, the + storm heavier, the air more stifling and unsavoury. + </p> + <p> + A sudden rush nearly knocked them down, driving them under a gargoyle, + whose spout was streaming with wet, and completed the drenching; but there + was a porch and an open door of a church close behind, and into this + Linette dragged her mistress. Dripping, breathless, bruised, she leant + against a pillar, not going forward, for others, much more gaily dressed, + had taken refuge there, and were chattering away, for little reverence was + paid at that date to the sanctity of buildings. + </p> + <p> + ‘Will the King be there, think you?’ eagerly asked a young girl, who had + been anxiously wiping the wet from her pink kirtle. + </p> + <p> + ‘Certes—he is to give the prizes,’ replied a portly dame in crimson. + </p> + <p> + ‘And the Lady of Beauty? I long to see her.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Her beauty is passing—except that which was better worth the solid + castle the King gave her,’ laughed the stout citizen, who seemed to be in + charge of them. + </p> + <p> + ‘The Dauphiness, too—will she be there?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, the Dauphiness!’ said the elder woman, with a meaning sound and shake + of the head. + </p> + <p> + ‘Scandal—evil tongues!’ growled the man. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, Master Jerome, there’s no denying it, for a merchant of Bourges told + me. She runs about the country on foot, like no discreet woman, let alone + a princess, with a good-for-nothing minstrel after her. Ah, you may grunt + and make signs, but I had it from the Countess de Craylierre’s own + tirewoman, who came for a bit of lace, that the Dauphin is about to the + Sire Jamet de Tillay caught her kissing the minstrel on a bench in the + garden at Nanci.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I would not trust the Sire de Tillay’s word. He is in debt to every + merchant of the place—a smooth-tongued deceiver. Belike he is bribed + to defame the poor lady, that the Dauphin may rid himself of a childless + wife.’ + </p> + <p> + The young girl was growing restless, declaring that the rain was over, and + that they should miss the getting good places at the show. Margaret had + stood all this time leaning against her pillar, with hands clenched + together and teeth firm set, trying to control the shuddering of horror + and indignation that went through her whole frame. She started + convulsively when Linette moved after the burgher, but put a force upon + herself when she perceived that it was in order to inquire how best to + reach the Hotel de Terreforte. + </p> + <p> + He pointed to the opposite door of the church, and Linette, reconnoitring + and finding that it led into a street entirely quiet and deserted, went + back to the Dauphiness, whom she found sunk on her knees, stiff and dazed. + </p> + <p> + ‘Come, Madame,’ she entreated, trying to raise her, ‘the Hotel de + Terreforte is near, these houses shelter us, and the rain is nearly over.’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret did not move at first; then she looked up and said, ‘What was it + that they said, Linette?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh! no matter what they said, Madame; they were ignorant creatures, who + knew not what they were talking about. Come, you are wet, you are + exhausted. This good lady will know how to help you.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There is no help in man,’ said Margaret, wildly stretching out her arms. + ‘Oh, God! help me—a desolate woman—and my sisters! Betrayed! + betrayed!’ + </p> + <p> + Very much alarmed, Linette at last succeeded in raising her to her feet, + and guiding her, half-blinded as she seemed, to the portal of the Hotel de + Terreforte—an archway leading into a courtyard. It was by great good + fortune that the very first person who stood within it was old Andrew of + the Cleugh, who despised all French sports in comparison with the + completeness of his master’s equipment, and was standing at the gate, + about to issue forth in quest of leather to mend a defective strap. His + eyes fell on the forlorn wanderer, who had no longer energy to keep her + hood forward. ‘My certie! he exclaimed, in utter amaze. + </p> + <p> + The Scottish words and voice seemed to revive Margaret, and she tottered + forward, exclaiming, ‘Oh! good man, help me! take me to the Lady.’ + </p> + <p> + Fortunately the Lady of Glenuskie, being much busied in preparations for + her journey, had sent Annis to the sports with the Lady of Terreforte, and + was ready to receive the poor, drenched, exhausted being, who almost + stumbled into her motherly arms, weeping bitterly, and incoherently + moaning something about her sisters, and her husband, and ‘betrayed.’ + </p> + <p> + Old Christie was happily also at home, and dry clothing, a warm posset, + and the Lady’s own bed, perhaps still more her soothing caresses, brought + Margaret back to the power of explaining her distress intelligibly—at + least as regarded her sisters. She had discovered that their escort had + been that bitter foe of their house, Robert Hall, and she verily believed + that he had betrayed her sisters into the hands of some of the routiers + who infested the roads. + </p> + <p> + Dame Lilias could not but think it only too likely; but she said ‘the + worst that could well befall the poor lassies in that case would be their + detention until a ransom was paid, and if their situation was known, the + King, the Dauphin, and the Duke of Brittany would be certain one or other + to rescue them by force of arms, if not to raise the money.’ She saw how + Margaret shuddered at the name of the Dauphin. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh! I have jewels—pearls—gold,’ cried Margaret. ‘I could pay + the sum without asking any one! Only, where are they, where are they? What + are they not enduring—the dear maidens! Would that I had never let + them out of my sight!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Would that I had not!’ echoed Dame Lilias. ‘But cheer up, dear Lady, + Madame de Ste. Petronelle is with them and will watch over them; and she + knows the ways of the country, and how to deal with these robbers, whoever + they may be. She will have a care of them.’ + </p> + <p> + But though the Lady of Glenuskie tried to cheer the unhappy princess, she + was full of consternation and misgivings as to the fate of her young + cousins, whom she loved heartily, and she was relieved when, in accordance + with the summons that she had sent, her husband’s spurs were heard ringing + on the stair. + </p> + <p> + He heard the story with alarm. He knew that Sir Andrew Gordon had been + told off to lead the convoy, and had even conversed with him on the + subject. + </p> + <p> + ‘Who exchanged him for Hall?’ he inquired. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, do not ask,’ cried the unhappy Margaret, covering her face with her + hands, and the shrewder Scots folk began to understand, as glances passed + between them, though they spared her. + </p> + <p> + She had intended throwing herself at the feet of the King, who had never + been unkind to her, and imploring his succour; but Sir Patrick brought + word that the King and Dauphin were going forth together to visit the + Abbot of a shrine at no great distance, and as soon as she heard that the + Dauphin was with his father, she shrank together, and gave up her purpose + for the present. Indeed, Sir Patrick thought it advisable for him to + endeavour to discover what had really become of the princesses before + applying to the King, or making their loss public. Nor was the Dauphiness + in a condition to repair to Court. Dame Lilias longed to keep her and + nurse and comfort her that evening; but while the spiteful whispers of De + Tillay were abroad, it was needful to be doubly prudent, and the morning’s + escapade must if possible be compensated by a public return to Chateau le + Surry. So Margaret was placed on Lady Drummond’s palfrey, and accompanied + home by all the attendants who could be got together. She could hardly sit + upright by the time the short ride was over, for pain in the side and + stitch in her breath. Again Lady Drummond would have stayed with her, but + the Countess de Craylierre, who had been extremely offended and + scandalised by the expedition of the Dauphiness, made her understand that + no one could remain there except by the invitation of the Dauphin, and + showed great displeasure at any one but herself attempting the care of + Madame la Dauphine, who, as all knew, was subject to megrims. + </p> + <p> + Margaret entreated her belle cousine to return in the morning and tell her + what had been done, and Dame Lilias accordingly set forth with Annis + immediately after mass and breakfast with the news that Sir Patrick had + taken counsel with the Sieur de erreforte, and that they had got together + such armed attendants as they could, and started with their sons for + Nanci, where they hoped to discover some traces of the lost ladies. + </p> + <p> + Indeed, he had brought his wife on his way, and was waiting in the court + in case the Princess should wish to see him before he went; but Lilias + found poor Margaret far too ill for this to be of any avail. She had + tossed about all night, and now was lying partly raised on a pile of + embroidered, gold-edged pillows, under an enormous, stiff, heavy quilt, + gorgeous with heraldic colours and devices, her pale cheeks flushed with + fever, her breath catching painfully, and with a terrible short cough, + murmuring strange words about her sisters, and about cruel tongues. A + crowd of both sexes and all ranks filled the room, gazing and listening. + </p> + <p> + She knew her cousin at her entrance, clasped her hand tight, and seemed to + welcome her native tongue, and understand her assurance that Sir Patrick + was gone to seek her sisters; but she wandered off into, ‘Don’t let him + ask Jamet. Ah, Katie Douglas, keep the door! They are coming.’ + </p> + <p> + Her husband, returning from the morning mass, had way made for him as he + advanced to the bed, and again her understanding partly returned, as he + said in his low, dry voice, ‘How now, Madame?’ + </p> + <p> + She looked up at him, held out her hot hand, and gasped, ‘Oh, sir, sir, + where are they?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Be more explicit, ma mie,’ he said, with an inscrutable face. + </p> + <p> + ‘You know, you know. Oh, husband, my Lord, you do not believe it. Say you + do not believe it. Send the whispering fiend away. He has hidden my + sisters.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She raves,’ said Louis. ‘Has the chirurgeon been with her?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘He is even now about to bleed her, my Lord,’ said Madame de Craylierre, + ‘and so I have sent for the King’s own physician.’ + </p> + <p> + Louis’s barber-surgeon (not yet Olivier le Dain) was a little, crooked old + Jew, at sight of whom Margaret screamed as if she took him for the + whispering fiend. He would fain have cleared the room and relieved the + air, but this was quite beyond his power; the ladies, knights, pages and + all chose to remain and look on at the struggles of the poor patient, + while Madame de Craylierre and Lady Drummond held her fast and forced her + to submit. Her husband, who alone could have prevailed, did not or would + not speak the word, but shrugged his shoulders and left the room, carrying + off with him at least his own attendants. + </p> + <p> + When she saw her blood flow, Margaret exclaimed, ‘Ah, traitors, take me + instead of my father—only—a priest.’ + </p> + <p> + Presently she fainted, and after partly reviving, seemed to doze, and + this, being less interesting, caused many of the spectators to depart. + </p> + <p> + When she awoke she was quite herself, and this was well, for the King came + to visit her. Margaret was fond of her father-in-law, who had always been + kind to her; but she was too ill, and speech hurt her too much, to allow + her to utter clearly all that oppressed her. + </p> + <p> + ‘My sisters! my poor sisters!’ she moaned. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! ma belle fille, fear not. All will be well with them. No doubt, my + good brother Rene has detained them, that Madame Eleanore may study a + little more of his music and painting. We will send a courier to Nanci, + who will bring good news of them,’ said the King, in a caressing voice + which soothed, if it did not satisfy, the sufferer. + </p> + <p> + She spoke out some thanks, and he added, ‘They may come any moment, + daughter, and that will cheer your little heart, and make you well. Only + take courage, child, and here is my good physician, Maitre Bertrand, come + to heal you.’ + </p> + <p> + Margaret still held the King’s hand, and sought to detain him. ‘Beau pere, + beau pere,’ she said, ‘you will not believe them! You will silence them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Whom, what, ma mie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The evil-speakers. Ah! Jamet.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I believe nothing my fair daughter tells me not to believe.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! sire, he speaks against me. He says—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hush! hush, child. Whoever vexes my daughter shall have his tongue slit + for him. But here we must give place to Maitre Bertrand.’ + </p> + <p> + Maitre Bertrand was a fat and stolid personage, who, nevertheless, had a + true doctor’s squabble with the Jew Samiel and drove him out. His + treatment was to exclude all the air possible, make the patient breathe + all sorts of essences, and apply freshly-killed pigeons to the painful + side. + </p> + <p> + Margaret did not mend under this method. She begged for Samiel, who had + several times before relieved her in slight illnesses; but she was given + to understand that the Dauphin would not permit him to interfere with + Maitre Bertrand. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah!’ she said to Dame Lilias, in their own language, ‘my husband calls + Bertrand an old fool! He does not wish me to recover! A childless wife is + of no value. He would have me dead! And so would I—if my fame were + cleared. If my sisters were found! Oh! my Lord, my Lord, I loved him so!’ + </p> + <p> + Poor Margaret! Such was her cry, whether sane or delirious, hour after + hour, day after day. Only when delirious she rambled into Scotch and + talked of Perth; went over again her father’s murder, or fancied her + sisters in the hands of some of the ferocious chieftains of the North, and + screamed to Sir Patrick or to Geordie Douglas to deliver them. Where was + all the chivalry of the Bleeding Heart? + </p> + <p> + Or, again, she would piteously plead her own cause with her husband—not + that he was present, a morning glance into her room sufficed him; but she + would excuse her own eager folly—telling him not to be angered with + her, who loved him wholly and entirely, and begging him to silence the + wicked tongues that defamed her. + </p> + <p> + When sensible she was very weak, and capable of saying very little; but + she clung fast to Lady Drummond, and, Dauphin or no Dauphin, Dame Lilias + was resolved on remaining and watching her day and night, Madame de + Craylierre becoming ready to leave the nursing to her when it became + severe. + </p> + <p> + The King came to see his daughter-in-law almost every day, and always + spoke to her in the same kindly but unmeaning vein, assuring her that her + sisters must be safe, and promising to believe nothing against herself; + but, as the Lady of Glenuskie knew from Olivier de Terreforte, taking no + measures either to discover the fate of the princesses or to banish and + silence Jamet de Tillay, though it was all over the Court that the + Dauphiness was dying for love of Alain Chartier. Was it that his son + prevented him from acting, or was it the strange indifference and + indolence that always made Charles the Well-Served bestir himself far too + late? + </p> + <p> + Any way, Margaret of Scotland was brokenhearted, utterly weary of life, + and with no heart or spirit to rally from the illness caused by the chill + of her hasty walk. She only wished to live long enough to know that her + sisters were safe, see them again, and send them under safe care to + Brittany. She exacted a promise from Dame Lilias never to leave them again + till they were in safe hands, with good husbands, or back in Scotland with + their brother and good Archbishop Kennedy. ‘Bid Jeanie never despise a + true heart; better, far better, than a crown,’ she sighed. + </p> + <p> + Louis concerned himself much that all the offices of religion should be + provided. He attended the mass daily celebrated in her room, and caused + priests to pray in the farther end continually. Lady Drummond, who had not + given up hope, and believed that good tidings of her sisters might almost + be a cure, thought that he really hurried on the last offices, at which he + devoutly assisted. However, the confession seemed to have given Margaret + much comfort. She told Dame Lilias that the priest had shown her how to + make an offering to God of her sore suffering from slander and evil + report, and reminded her that to endure it patiently was treading in the + steps of her Master. She was resolved, therefore, to make no further + struggle nor complaint, but to trust that her silence and endurance would + be accepted. She could pray for her sisters and their safety, and she + would endeavour to yield up even that last earthly desire to be certified + of their safety, and to see their bonnie faces once more. So there she + lay, a being formed by nature and intellect to have been the inspiring + helpmeet of some noble-hearted man, the stay of a kingdom, the education + of all around her in all that was beautiful and refined, but cast away + upon one of the most mean and selfish-hearted of mankind, who only + perceived her great qualities to hate and dread their manifestation in a + woman, to crush them by his contempt; and finally, though he did not + originate the cruel slander that broke her heart, he envenomed it by his + sneers, so as to deprive her of all power of resistance. + </p> + <p> + The lot of Margaret of Scotland was as piteous as that of any of the + doomed house of Stewart. And there the Lady of Glenuskie and Annis de + Terreforte watched her sinking day by day, and still there were no tidings + of Jean and Eleanor from Nanci, no messenger from Sir Patrick to tell + where the search was directed. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 9. BALCHENBURG + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘In these wylde deserts where she now abode + There dwelt a salvage nation, which did live + On stealth and spoil, and making nightly rade + Into their neighbours’ borders.’—SPENSER. +</pre> + <p> + A terrible legacy of the Hundred Years’ War, which, indeed, was not yet + entirely ended by the Peace of Tours, was the existence of bands of men + trained to nothing but war and rapine, and devoid of any other means of + subsistence than freebooting on the peasantry or travellers, whence they + were known as routiers—highwaymen, and ecorcheurs—flayers. + They were a fearful scourge to France in the early part of the reign of + Charles VII., as, indeed, they had been at every interval of peace ever + since the battle of Creci, and they really made a state of warfare + preferable to the unhappy provinces, or at least to those where it was not + actually raging. In a few years more the Dauphin contrived to delude many + of them into an expedition, where he abandoned them and left them to be + massacred, after which he formed the rest into the nucleus of a standing + army; but at this time they were the terror of travellers, who only durst + go about any of the French provinces in well-armed and large parties. + </p> + <p> + The domains of King Rene, whether in Lorraine or Provence, were, however, + reckoned as fairly secure, but from the time the little troop, with the + princesses among them, had started from Nanci, Madame de Ste. Petronelle + became uneasy. She looked up at the sun, which was shining in her face, + more than once, and presently drew the portly mule she was riding towards + George Douglas. + </p> + <p> + ‘Sir,’ she said, ‘you are the ladies’ squire?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have that honour, Madame.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And a Scot?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Even so.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I ask you, which way you deem that we are riding?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Eastward, Madame, if the sun is to be trusted. Mayhap somewhat to the + south.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Yea; and which side lies Chalons?’ + </p> + <p> + This was beyond George’s geography. He looked up with open mouth and shook + his head. + </p> + <p> + ‘Westward!’ said the lady impressively. ‘And what’s yon in the distance?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Save that this land is as flat as a bannock, I’d have said ‘twas + mountains.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Mountains they are, young man!’ said Madame de Ste. Petronelle + emphatically—‘the hills between Lorraine and Alsace, which we should + be leaving behind us.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Is there treachery?’ asked George, reining up his horse. ‘Ken ye who is + the captain of this escort?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘His name is Hall; he is thick with the Dauphin. Ha! Madame, is he sib to + him that aided in the slaughter of Eastern’s Eve night?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Just, laddie. ‘Tis own son to him that Queen Jean made dae sic a fearful + penance. What are ye doing?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I’ll run the villain through, and turn back to Nanci while yet there is + time,’ said George, his hand on his sword. + </p> + <p> + ‘Hold, ye daft bodie! That would but bring all the lave on ye. There’s + nothing for it but to go on warily, and maybe at the next halt we might + escape from them.’ + </p> + <p> + But almost while Madame de Ste. Petronelle spoke there was a cry, and from + a thicket there burst out a band of men in steel headpieces and buff + jerkins, led by two or three horsemen. There was a confused outcry of ‘St. + Denys! St. Andrew!’ on one side, ‘Yield!’ on the other. Madame’s rein was + seized, and though she drew her dagger, her hand was caught before she + could strike, by a fellow who cried, ‘None of that, you old hag, or it + shall be the worse for thee!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘St. Andrew! St. Andrew!’ screamed Eleanor. ‘Scots, to the rescue of your + King’s sisters!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Douglas—Douglas, help!’ cried Jean. But each was surrounded by a + swarm of the ruffians; and as George Douglas hastily pushed down some with + his horse, and struck down one or two with his sword, he was felled by a + mighty blow on the head, and the ecorcheurs thronged over him, dragging + him off his horse, any resistance on the part of the Scottish archers, + their escort, they could not tell; they only heard a tumult of shouts and + cries, and found rude hands holding them on their horses and dragging them + among the trees. Their screams for help were answered by a gruff voice + from a horseman, evidently the leader of the troop. ‘Hold that noise, + Lady! No ill is meant to you, but you must come with us. No; screams are + useless! There’s none to come to you. Stop them, or I must!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There is none!’ said Madame de Ste. Petronelle’s voice in her own tongue; + ‘best cease to cry, and not fash the loons more.’ + </p> + <p> + The sisters heard, and in her natural tone Eleanor said in French, ‘Sir, + know you who you are thus treating? The King’s daughter—sisters of + the Dauphiness!’ + </p> + <p> + He laughed. ‘Full well,’ he answered, in very German-sounding French. + </p> + <p> + ‘Such usage will bring the vengeance of the King and Dauphin on you.’ + </p> + <p> + He laughed yet more loudly. His face was concealed by his visor, but the + ill-fitting armour and great roan horse made Jean recognise the knight + whose eyes had dwelt on her so boldly at the tournament, and she added her + voice. + </p> + <p> + ‘Your Duke of the Tirol will punish this.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘He has enough to do to mind his own business,’ was the answer. + </p> + <p> + ‘Come, fair one, hold your tongue! There’s no help for it, and the less + trouble you give us the better it will be for you.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But our squire!’ Jean exclaimed, looking about her. ‘Where is he?’ + </p> + <p> + Again there was a rude laugh. + </p> + <p> + ‘Showed fight. Disposed of. See there!’ and Jean could not but recognise + the great gray horse from the Mearns that George Douglas had always + ridden. Had she brought the gallant youth to this, and without word or + look to reward his devotion? She gave one low cry, and bowed her head, + grieved and sick at heart. While Eleanor, on her side, exclaimed, + </p> + <p> + ‘Felon, thou hast slain a nobleman’s brave heir! Disgrace to knighthood!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Peace, maid, or we will find means to silence thy tongue,’ growled the + leader; and Madame de Ste. Petronelle interposed, ‘Whisht—whisht, my + bairn; dinna anger them.’ For she saw that there was more disposition to + harshness towards Eleanor than towards Jean, whose beauty seemed to + command a sort of regard. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor took the hint. Her eyes filled with tears, and her bosom heaved at + the thought of the requital of the devotion of the brave young man, lying + in his blood, so far from his father and his home; but she would not have + these ruffians see her weep and think it was for herself, and she proudly + straightened herself in her saddle and choked down the rising sob. + </p> + <p> + On, on they went, at first through the wood by a tangled path, then over a + wide moor covered with heather, those mountains, which had at first + excited the old lady’s alarm, growing more distinct in front of them; + going faster, too, so that the men who held the reins were half running, + till the ground began to rise and grow rougher, when, at an order in + German from the knight, a man leapt on in front of each lady to guide her + horse. + </p> + <p> + Where were they going? No one deigned to ask except Madame de Ste. + Petronelle, and her guard only grunted, ‘Nicht verstand,’ or something + equivalent. + </p> + <p> + A thick mass of wood rose before them, a stream coming down from it, and + here there was a halt, the ladies were lifted down, and the party, who + numbered about twelve men, refreshed themselves with the provisions that + the Infanta Yolande had hospitably furnished for her guests. The knight + awkwardly, but not uncivilly, offered a share to his captives, but Eleanor + would have moved them off with disdain, and Jean sat with her head in her + hands, and would not look up. + </p> + <p> + The old lady remonstrated. ‘Eat—eat,’ she said. ‘We shall need all + our spirit and strength, and there’s no good in being weak and spent with + fasting.’ + </p> + <p> + Eleanor saw the prudence of this, and accepted the food and wine offered + to her; but Jean seemed unable to swallow anything but a long draught of + wine and water, and scarcely lifted her head from her sister’s shoulder. + Eleanor held her rosary, and though the words she conned over were Latin, + all her heart was one silent prayer for protection and deliverance, and + commendation of that brave youth’s soul to bis Maker. + </p> + <p> + The knight kept out of their way, evidently not wishing to be + interrogated, and he seemed to be the only person who could speak French + after a fashion. By and by they were remounted and led across some marshy + ground, where the course of the stream was marked by tall ferns and weeds, + then into a wood of beeches, where the sun lighted the delicate young + foliage, while the horses trod easily among the brown fallen leaves. This + gave place to another wood of firs, and though the days were fairly long, + here it was rapidly growing dark under the heavy branches, so that the + winding path could only have been followed by those well used to it. As it + became steeper and more stony the trees became thinner, and against the + eastern sky could be seen, dark and threatening, the turrets of a castle + above a steep, smooth-looking, grassy slope, one of the hills, in fact, + called from their shape by the French, ballons. + </p> + <p> + Just then Jean’s horse, weary and unused to mountaineering, stumbled. The + man at its head was perhaps not attending to it, for the sudden pull he + gave the rein only precipitated the fall. The horse was up again in a + moment, but Jean lay still. Her sister and the lady were at her side in a + moment; but when they tried to raise her she cried out, at first + inarticulately, then, ‘Oh, my arm!’ and on another attempt to lift her she + fainted away. The knight was in the meantime swearing in German at the man + who had been leading her, then asking anxiously in French how it was with + the maiden, as she lay with her head on her sister’s lap, Madame answered, + </p> + <p> + ‘Hurt—much hurt.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But not to the death?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Who knows? No thanks to you.’ He tendered a flask where only a few drops + of wine remained, growling something or other about the Schelm; and when + Jean’s lips had been moistened with it she opened her eyes, but sobbed + with pain, and only entreated to be let alone. This, of course, was + impossible; but with double consternation Eleanor looked up at what, in + the gathering darkness, seemed a perpendicular height. The knight made + them understand that all that could be done was to put the sufferer on + horseback and support her there in the climb upwards, and he proceeded + without further parley to lift her up, not entirely without heed to her + screams and moans, for he emitted such sounds as those with which he might + have soothed his favourite horse, as he placed her on the back of a stout, + little, strong, mountain pony. Eleanor held her there, and he walked at + its head. Madame de Ste. Petronelle would fain have kept up on the other + side, but she had lost her mountain legs, and could not have got up at all + without the mule on which she was replaced. Eleanor’s height enabled her + to hold her arm round her sister, and rest her head on her shoulder, + though how she kept on in the dark, dragged along as it were blindly up + and up, she never could afterwards recollect; but at last pine torches + came down to meet them, there was a tumult of voices, a yawning black + archway in front, a light or two flitting about. Jean lay helplessly + against her, only groaning now and then; then, as the arch seemed to + swallow them up, Eleanor was aware of an old man, lame and rugged, who + bawled loud and seemed to be the highly displeased master; of calls for + ‘Barbe,’ and then of an elderly, homely-looking woman, who would have + assisted in taking Jean off the pony but that the knight was already in + the act. However, he resigned her to her sister and Madame de Ste. + Petronelle, while Barbe led the way, lamp in hand. It was just as well + poor Jeanie remained unconscious or nearly so while she was conveyed up + the narrow stairs to a round chamber, not worse in furnishing than that at + Dunbar, though very unlike their tapestried rooms at Nanci. + </p> + <p> + It was well to be able to lay her down at all, and old Barbe was not only + ready and pitying, but spoke French. She had some wine ready, and had + evidently done her best in the brief warning to prepare a bed. The tone of + her words convinced Madame de Ste. Petronelle that at any rate she was no + enemy. So she was permitted to assist in the investigation of the + injuries, which proved to be extensive bruises and a dislocated shoulder. + Both had sufficient experience in rough-and-ready surgery, as well as + sufficient strength, for them to be able to pull in the shoulder, while + Eleanor, white and trembling, stood on one side with the lamp, and a + little flaxen-haired girl of twelve years old held bandages and ran after + whatever Barbe asked for. + </p> + <p> + This done, and Jean having been arranged as comfortably as might be, Barbe + obeyed some peremptory summonses from without, and presently came back. + </p> + <p> + ‘The seigneur desires to speak with the ladies,’ she said; ‘but I have + told him that they cannot leave la pauvrette, and are too much spent to + speak with him to-night. I will bring them supper and they shall rest.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘We thank you,’ said Madame de Ste. Petronelle, ‘Only, de grace, tell us + where we are, and who this seigneur is, and what he wants with us poor + women.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘This is the Castle of Balchenburg,’ was the reply; ‘the seigneur is the + Baron thereof. For the next’—she shrugged her shoulders—‘it + must be one of Baron Rudiger’s ventures. But I must go and fetch the + ladies some supper. Ah! the demoiselle surely needs it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And some water!’ entreated Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah yes,’ she replied; ‘Trudchen shall bring some.’ + </p> + <p> + The little girl presently reappeared with a pitcher as heavy as she could + carry. She could not understand French, but looked much interested, and + very eager and curious as she brought in several of the bundles and mails + of the travellers. + </p> + <p> + ‘Thank the saints,’ cried the lady, ‘they do not mean to strip us of our + clothes!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘They have stolen us, and that is enough for them,’ said Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + Jean lay apparently too much exhausted to take notice of what was going + on, and they hoped she might sleep, while they moved about quietly. The + room seemed to be a cell in the hollow of the turret, and there were two + loophole windows, to which Eleanor climbed up, but she could see nothing + but the stars. ‘Ah! yonder is the Plough, just as when we looked out at it + at Dunbar o’er the sea!’ she sighed. ‘The only friendly thing I can see! + Ah! but the same God and the saints are with us still!’ and she clasped + her rosary’s cross as she returned to her sister, who was sighing out an + entreaty for water. + </p> + <p> + By and by the woman returned, and with her the child. She made a low + reverence as she entered, having evidently been informed of the rank of + her captives. A white napkin was spread over the great chest that served + for a table—a piece of civilisation such as the Dunbar captivity had + not known—three beechen bowls and spoons, and a porringer containing + a not unsavoury stew of a fowl in broth thickened with meal. They tried to + make their patient swallow a little broth, but without much success, + though Eleanor in the mountain air had become famished enough to make a + hearty meal, and feel more cheered and hopeful after it. Barbe’s evident + sympathy and respect were an element of comfort, and when Jean revived + enough to make some inquiry after poor Skywing, and it was translated into + French, there was an assurance that the hawk was cared for—hopes + even given of its presence. Barbe was not only compassionate, but ready to + answer all the questions in her power. She was Burgundian, but her home + having been harried in the wars, her husband had taken service as a + man-at-arms with the Baron of Balchenburg, she herself becoming the + bower-woman of the Baroness, now dead. Since the death of the good lady, + whose influence had been some restraint, everything had become much + rougher and wilder, and the lords of the castle, standing on the frontier + as it did, had become closely connected with the feuds of Germany as well + as the wars in France. The old Baron had been lamed in a raid into + Burgundy, since which time he had never left home; and Barbe’s husband had + been killed, her sons either slain or seeking their fortune elsewhere, so + that nothing was left to her but her little daughter Gertrude, for whose + sake she earnestly longed to find her way down to more civilised and godly + life; but she was withheld by the difficulties in the path, and the + extreme improbability of finding a maintenance anywhere else, as well as + by a certain affection for her two Barons, and doubts what they would do + without her, since the elder was in broken health and the younger had been + her nursling. In fact, she was the highest female authority in the castle, + and kept up whatever semblance of decency or propriety remained since her + mistress’s death. All this came out in the way of grumbling or + lamentation, in the satisfaction of having some woman to confide in, + though her young master had made her aware of the rank of his captives. + Every one, it seemed, had been taken by surprise. He was in the habit of + making expeditions on his own account, and bringing home sometimes lawless + comrades or followers, sometimes booty; but this time, after taking great + pains to furbish up a suit of armour brought home long ago, he had set + forth to the festivities at Nanci. The lands and castle were so situated, + that the old Baron had done homage for the greater part to Sigismund as + Duke of Elsass, and for another portion to King Rene as Duke of Lorraine, + as whose vassal the young Baron had appeared. No more had been heard of + him till one of his men hurried up with tidings that Herr Rudiger had + taken a bevy of captives, with plenty of spoil, but that one was a lady + much hurt, for whom Barbe must prepare her best. + </p> + <p> + Since this, Barbe had learnt from her young master that the injured lady + was the sister of the Dauphiness, and a king’s daughter, and that every + care must be taken of her and her sister, for he was madly in love with + her, and meant her to be his wife. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor and Madame de Ste. Petronelle cried out at this with horror, in a + stifled way, as Barbe whispered it. + </p> + <p> + ‘Too high, too dangerous game for him, I know,’ said the old woman. ‘So + said his father, who was not a little dismayed when he heard who these + ladies were.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The King, my brother, the Dauphin, the Duke of Brittany—’ began + Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘Alas! the poor boy would never have ventured it but for encouragement,’ + sighed Barbe. ‘Treacherous I say it must be!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I knew there was treachery, ‘exclaimed Madame de Ste. Petronelle, ‘so + soon as I found which way our faces were turned.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But who could or would betray us?’ demanded Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘You need not ask that, when your escort was led by Andrew Hall,’ returned + the elder lady. ‘Poor young George of the Red Peel had only just told me + so, when the caitiffs fell on him, and he came to his bloody death.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hall! Then I marvel not,’ said Eleanor, in a low, awe-struck voice. ‘My + brother the Dauphin could not have known.’ + </p> + <p> + The old Scotswoman refrained from uttering her belief that he knew only + too well, but by the time all this had been said Barbe was obliged to + leave them, having arranged for the night that Eleanor should sleep in the + big bed beside her sister, and their lady across it at their feet—a + not uncommon arrangement in those days. + </p> + <p> + Sleep, however, in spite of weariness, was only to be had in snatches, for + poor Jean was in much pain, and very feverish, besides being greatly + terrified at their situation, and full of grief and self-reproach for the + poor young Master of Angus, never dozing off for a moment without fancying + she saw him dying and upbraiding her, and for the most part tossing in a + restless misery that required the attendance of one or both. She had never + known ailment before, and was thus all the more wretched and impatient, + alarming and distressing Eleanor extremely, though Madame de Ste. + Petronelle declared it was only a matter of course, and that the lassie + would soon be well. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, Madame, our comforter and helper,’ said Elleen. + </p> + <p> + ‘Call me no French names, dearies. Call me the Leddy Lindsay or Dame + Elspeth, as I should be at home. We be all Scots here, in one sore stour. + If I could win a word to my son, Ritchie, he would soon have us out of + this place.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Would not Barbe help us to a messenger?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I doubt it. She would scarce bring trouble on her lords; but we might be + worse off than with her.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Why does she not come? I want some more drink,’ moaned Jean. Barbe did + come, and, moreover, brought not only water but some tisane of herbs that + was good for fever and had been brewing all night, and she was wonderfully + good-humoured at the patient’s fretful refusal, though between coaxing and + authority ‘Leddy Lindsay’ managed to get it taken at last. After + Margaret’s experience of her as a stern duenna, her tenderness in illness + and trouble was a real surprise. + </p> + <p> + No keys were turned on them, but there was little disposition to go beyond + the door which opened on the stone stair in the gray wall. The view from + the windows revealed that they were very high up. There was a bit of + castle wall to be seen below, and beyond a sea of forest, the dark masses + of pine throwing out the lighter, more delicate sweeps of beech, and pale + purple distance beyond—not another building within view, giving a + sense of vast solitude to Eleanor’s eyes, more dreary than the sea at + Dunbar, and far more changeless. An occasional bird was all the variety to + be hoped for. + </p> + <p> + By and by Barbe brought a message that her masters requested the ladies’ + presence at the meal, a dinner, in fact, served about an hour before noon. + Eleanor greatly demurred, but Barbe strongly advised consent, ‘Or my young + lord will be coming up here,’ she said; ‘they both wish to have speech of + you, and would have been here before now, if my old lord were not so lame, + and the young one so shy, the poor child!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Shy,’ exclaimed Eleanor, ‘after what he has dared to do to us!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘All the more for that very reason,’ said Barbe. + </p> + <p> + ‘True,’ returned Madame; ‘the savage who is most ferocious in his acts is + most bashful in his breeding.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘How should my poor boy have had any breeding up here in the forests?’ + demanded Barbe. ‘Oh, if he had only fixed his mind on a maiden of his own + degree, she might have brought the good days back; but alas, now he will + be only bringing about his own destruction, which the saints avert.’ + </p> + <p> + It was agreed that Eleanor had better make as royal and imposing an + appearance as possible, so instead of the plain camlet riding kirtles that + she and Lady Lindsay had worn, she donned a heraldic sort of garment, a + tissue of white and gold thread, with the red lion ramping on back and + breast, and the double tressure edging all the hems, part of the outfit + furnished at her great-uncle’s expense in London, but too gaudy for her + taste, and she added to her already considerable height by the tall, + veiled headgear that had been despised as unfashionable. + </p> + <p> + Jean from her bed cried out that she looked like Pharaoh’s daughter in the + tapestry, and consented to be left to the care of little Trudchen, since + Madame de Ste. Petronelle must act attendant, and Barbe evidently thought + her young master’s good behaviour might be the better secured by her + presence. + </p> + <p> + So, at the bottom of the narrow stone stair, Eleanor shook out her plumes, + the attendant lady arranged her veil over her yellow hair, and drew out + her short train and long hanging sleeves, a little behind the fashion, but + the more dignified, as she swept into the ball, and though her heart beat + desperately, holding her head stiff and high, and looking every inch a + princess, the shrewd Scotch lady behind her flattered herself that the two + Barons did look a little daunted by the bearing of the creature they had + caught. + </p> + <p> + The father, who had somewhat the look of an old fox, limped forward with a + less ungraceful bow than the son, who had more of the wolf. Some greeting + was mumbled, and the old man would have taken her hand to lead her to the + highest place at table, but she would not give it. + </p> + <p> + ‘I am no willing guest of yours, sir,’ she said, perhaps alarmed at her + own boldness, but drawing herself up with great dignity. ‘I desire to know + by what right my sister and I, king’s daughters, on our way to King + Charles’s Court, have thus been seized and detained?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘We do not stickle as to rights here on the borders, Lady,’ said the elder + Baron in bad French; ‘it would be wiser to abate a little of that + outre-cuidance of yours, and listen to our terms.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘A captive has no choice save to listen,’ returned Eleanor; ‘but as to + speaking of terms, my brothers-in-law, the Dauphin and the Duke of + Brittany, may have something to say to them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Exactly so,’ replied the old Baron, in a tone of some irony, which she + did not like. ‘Now, Lady, our terms are these, but understand first that + all this affair is none of my seeking, but my son here has been backed up + in it by some whom’—on a grunt from Sir Rudiger—‘there is no + need to name. He—the more fool he—has taken a fancy to your + sister, though, if all reports be true, she has nought but her royal + blood, not so much as a denier for a dowry nor as ransom for either of + you. However, this I will overlook, dead loss as it is to me and mine, and + so your sister, so soon as she recovers from her hurt, will become my + son’s wife, and I will have you and your lady safely conducted without + ransom to the borders of Normandy or Brittany, as you may list.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘And think you, sir,’ returned Eleanor, quivering with indignation, ‘that + the daughter of a hundred kings is like to lower herself by listening to + the suit of a petty robber baron of the Marches?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I do not think! but I know that though I am a fool for giving in to my + son’s madness, these are the only terms I propose; and if you, Lady, so + deal with her as to make her accept them, you are free without ransom to + go where you will.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You expect me to sell my sister,’ said Eleanor disdainfully. + </p> + <p> + ‘Look you here,’ broke in Rudiger, bursting out of his shyness. ‘She is + the fairest maiden, gentle or simple, I ever saw; I love her with all my + heart. If she be mine, I swear to make her a thousand times more cared for + than your sister the Dauphiness; and if all be true your Scottish archers + tell me, you Scottish folk have no great cause to disdain an Elsass forest + castle.’ + </p> + <p> + An awkward recollection, of the Black Knight of Lorn came across Eleanor, + but she did not lose her stately dignity. + </p> + <p> + ‘It is not the wealth or poverty that we heed,’ she said, ‘but the + nobility and princeliness.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There is nothing to be done then, son,’ said the old Baron, ‘but to wait + a day or two and see whether the maiden herself will be less proud and + more reasonable. Otherwise, these ladies understand that there will be + close imprisonment and diet according to the custom of the border till a + thousand gold crowns be paid down for each of these sisters of a Scotch + king, and five hundred for Madame here; and when that is like to be found, + the damoiselle herself may know,’ and he laughed. + </p> + <p> + ‘We have those who will take care of our ransom,’ said Eleanor, though her + heart misgave her. ‘Moreover, Duke Sigismund will visit such an offence + dearly!’ and there was a glow on her cheeks. + </p> + <p> + ‘He knows better than to meddle with a vassal of Lorraine,’ said the old + man. + </p> + <p> + ‘King Rene—’ began Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘He is too wary to meddle with a vassal of Elsass,’ sneered the Baron. + ‘No, no, Lady, ransom or wedding, there lies your choice.’ + </p> + <p> + With this there appeared to be a kind of truce, perhaps in consequence of + the appearance of a great pie; and Eleanor did not refuse to sit down to + the table and partake of the food, though she did not choose to converse; + whereas Madame de Ste. Petronelle thought it wiser to be as agreeable as + she could, and this, in the opinion of the Court of the Dauphiness, was + not going very far. + </p> + <p> + Long before the Barons and their retainers had finished, little Trudchen + came hurrying down to say that the lady was crying and calling for her + sister, and Eleanor was by no means sorry to hasten to her side, though + only to receive a petulant scolding for the desertion that had lasted so + very long, according to the sick girl’s sensations. + </p> + <p> + Matters remained in abeyance while the illness continued; Jean had a night + of fever, and when that passed, under the experienced management of Dame + Elspie, as the sisters called her more and more, she was very weak and + sadly depressed. Sometimes she wept and declared she should die in these + dismal walls, like her mother at Dunbar, and never see Jamie and Mary + again; sometimes she blamed Elleen for having put this mad scheme into her + head; sometimes she fretted for her cousins Lilias and Annis of Glenuskie, + and was sure it was all Elleen’s fault for having let themselves be + separated from Sir Patrick; while at others she declared the Drummonds + faithless and disloyal for having gone after their own affairs and left + the only true and leal heart to die for her; and then came fresh floods of + tears, though sometimes, as she passionately caressed Skywing, she + declared the hawk to be the only faithful creature in existence. + </p> + <p> + Baron Rudiger was evidently very uneasy about her; Barbe reported how + gloomy and miserable he was, and how he relieved his feelings by beating + the unfortunate man who had been leading the horse, and in a wiser manner + by seeking fish in the torrent and birds on the hills for her refreshment, + and even helping Trudchen to gather the mountain strawberries for her. + This was, however, so far from a recommendation to Jean, that after the + first Barbe gave it to be understood that all were Trudchen’s providing. + </p> + <p> + They suspected that Barbe nattered and soothed ‘her boy,’ as she termed + him, with hopes, but they owed much to the species of authority with which + she kept him from forcing himself upon them. Eleanor sometimes tried to + soothe her sister, and while away the time with her harp. The Scotch songs + were a great delight to Dame Elspie, but they made Jean weep in her + weakness, and Elleen’s great resource was King Rene’s parting gift of the + tales of Huon de Bourdeaux, with its wonderful chivalrous adventures, and + the appearances of the dwarf Oberon; and she greatly enjoyed the idea of + the pleasure it would give Jamie—if ever she should see Jamie again; + and she wondered, too, whether the Duke of the Tirol knew the story—which + even at some moments amused Jean. + </p> + <p> + There was a stair above their chamber, likewise in the thickness of the + wall, which Barbe told them they might safely explore, and thence Eleanor + discovered that the castle was one of the small but regularly-built + fortresses not uncommon on the summit of hills. It was an octagon—as + complete as the ground would permit—with a huge wall and a tower at + each angle. One face, that on the most accessible side, was occupied by + the keep in which they were, with a watch-tower raising its finger and + banner above them, the little, squat, round towers around not lifting + their heads much above the battlements of the wall. The descent on most of + the sides was almost precipitous, on two entirely so, while in the rear + another steep hill rose so abruptly that it seemed to frown over them + though separated by a ravine. + </p> + <p> + Nothing was to be seen all round but the tops of trees—dark pines, + beeches, and chestnuts in the gay, light green of spring, a hopeless and + oppressive waste of verdure, where occasionally a hawk might be seen to + soar, and whence the howlings of wolves might be heard at night. + </p> + <p> + Jean was, in a week, so well that there was no cause for deferring the + interview any longer, and, indeed, she was persuaded that Elleen had not + been half resolute or severe enough, and that she could soon show the two + Barons that they detained her at their peril. Still she looked white and + thin, and needed a scarf for her arm, when she caused herself to be + arrayed as splendidly as her sister had been, and descended to the hall, + where, like Eleanor, she took the initiative by an appeal against the + wrong and injustice that held two free-born royal ladies captive. + </p> + <p> + ‘He who has the power may do as he wills, my pretty damsel,’ replied the + old Baron. ‘Once for all, as I told your sister, these threats are of no + avail, though they sound well to puff up your little airs. Your own + kingdom is a long way off, and breeds more men than money; and as to our + neighbours, they dare not embroil themselves by meddling with us + borderers. You had better take what we offer, far better than aught your + barbarous northern lords could give, and then your sister will be free, + without ransom, to depart or to stay here till she finds another bold + baron of the Marches to take her to wife. Ha, thou Rudiger! why dost stand + staring like a wild pig in a pit? Canst not speak a word for thyself?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘She shall be my queen,’ said Rudiger hoarsely, bumping himself down on + his knees, and trying to master her hand, but she drew it away from him. + </p> + <p> + ‘As if I would be queen of a mere nest of robbers and freebooters,’ she + said. ‘You forget, Messires, that my sister is daughter-in-law to the King + of France. We must long ago have been missed, and I expect every hour that + my brother, the Dauphin, will be here with his troops.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That’s what you expect. So you do not know, my proud demoiselle, that my + son would scarce have been rash enough to meddle with such lofty gear, for + all his folly, if he had not had a hint that maidens with royal blood but + no royal portions were not wanted at Court, and might be had for the + picking up!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It is a brutal falsehood, or else a mere invention of the traitor Hall’s, + our father’s murderer!’ said Jean, with flashing eyes. ‘I would have you + to know, both of you, my Lords, that were we betrayed and forsaken by + every kinsman we have, I will not degrade the blood royal of Scotland by + mating it with a rude and petty freebooter. You may keep us captives as + you will, but you will not break our spirit.’ + </p> + <p> + So saying, Jean swept back to the stairs, turning a deaf ear to the + Baron’s chuckle of applause and murmur, ‘A gallant spirited dame she will + make thee, my junker, and hold out the castle well against all foes, when + once she is broken in.’ + </p> + <p> + Jean and Eleanor alike disbelieved that Louis could have encouraged this + audacious attempt, but they were dismayed to find that Madame de Ste. + Petronelle thought it far from improbable, for she believed him capable of + almost any underhand treachery. She did, however, believe that though + there might be some delay, a stir would be made, if only by her own son, + which would end in their situation being publicly known, and final release + coming, if Jean could only be patient and resolute. + </p> + <p> + But to the poor girl it seemed as if the ground were cut from under her + feet; and as her spirits drooped more and more, there were times when she + said, ‘Elleen, I must consent. I have been the death of the one true heart + that was mine! Why should I hold out any longer, and make thee and Dame + Elspie wear out your days in this dismal forest hold? Never shall I be + happy again, so it matters not what becomes of me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘It matters to me,’ said Elleen. ‘Sister, thinkest thou I could go away to + be happy, leaving thee bound to this rude savage in his donjon? Fie, Jean, + this is not worthy of King James’s daughter; he spent all those years of + patience in captivity, and shall we lose heart in a few days?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Is it a few days? It is like years!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘That is because thou hast been sick. See now, let us dance and sing, so + that the jailers may know we are not daunted. We have been shut up ere + now, God brought us out, and He will again, and we need not pine.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah, then we were children, and had seen nothing better; and—and + there was not his blood on me!’ + </p> + <p> + And Jean fell a-weeping. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0010" id="link2HCH0010"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 10. TENDER AND TRUE + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘For I am now the Earlis son, + And not a banished, man.’—The Nut-Brown Maid. +</pre> + <p> + ‘O St. Andrew! St. Bride! Our Lady of Succour! St. Denys!—all the + lave of you, that may be nearest in this fremd land,—come and aid + him. It is the Master of Angus, ye ken—the hope of his house. He’ll + build you churches, gie ye siller cups and braw vestments gin ye’ll bring + him back. St. Andrew! St. Rule! St. Ninian!—you ken a Scots tongue! + Stay his blood,—open his een,—come to help ane that ever loved + you and did you honour!’ + </p> + <p> + So wailed Ringan of the Raefoot, holding his master’s head on his knees, + and binding up as best he might an ugly thrust in the side, and a blow + which had crushed the steel cap into the midst of the hair. When he saw + his master fall and the ladies captured, he had, with the better part of + valour, rushed aside and hid himself in the thicket of thorns and hazels, + where, being manifestly only a stray horseboy, no search was made for him. + He rightly concluded that, dead or alive, his master might thus be better + served than by vainly struggling over his fallen body. + </p> + <p> + It seemed as though, in answer to his invocation, a tremor began to pass + through Douglas’s frame, and as Ringan exclaimed, ‘There! there!—he + lives! Sir, sir! Blessings on the saints! I was sure that a French + reiver’s lance could never be the end of the Master,’ George opened his + eyes. + </p> + <p> + ‘What is it?’ he said faintly. ‘Where are the ladies?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Heed not the leddies the noo, sir, but let me bind your head. That cap + has crushed like an egg-shell, and has cut you worse than the sword. Bide + still, sir, I say, if ye mean to do any gude another time!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The ladies—Ringan—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The loons rid aff wi’ them, sir—up towards the hills yonder. Nay! + but if ye winna thole to let me bind your wound, how d’ye think to win to + their aid, or ever to see bonnie Scotland again?’ + </p> + <p> + George submitted to this reasoning; but, as his senses returned, asked if + all the troop had gone. + </p> + <p> + ‘Na, sir; the ane with that knight who was at the tourney—a plague + light on him—went aff with the leddies—up yonder; but they, as + they called the escort—the Archers of the Guard, as they behoved to + call themselves—they rid aff by the way that we came by—the + traitor loons!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! it was black treachery. Follow the track of the ladies, Ringan;—heed + not me.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Mickle gude that wad do, sir, if I left you bleeding here! Na, na; I maun + see you safely bestowed first before I meet with ony other. I’m the + Douglas’s man, no the Stewart’s.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Then will I after them!’ cried George of Angus, starting up; but he + staggered and had to catch at Ringan. + </p> + <p> + There was no water near; nothing to refresh or revive him had been left. + Ringan looked about in anxiety and distress on the desolate scene—bare + heath on one side, thicket, gradually rising into forest and mountain, on + the other. Suddenly he gave a long whistle, and to his great joy there was + a crackling among the bushes and he beheld the shaggy-faced pony on which + he had ridden all the way from Yorkshire, and which had no doubt eluded + the robbers. There was a bundle at the saddle-bow, and after a little + coquetting the pony allowed itself to be caught, and a leathern bottle was + produced from the bag, containing something exceedingly sour, but with an + amount of strength in it which did something towards reviving the Master. + </p> + <p> + ‘I can sit the pony,’ he said; ‘let us after them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nae sic fulery,’ said Ringan. ‘I ken better what sorts a green wound like + yours, sir! Sit the pony ye may, but to be safely bestowed, ere I stir a + foot after the leddies.’ + </p> + <p> + George broke out into fierce language and angry commands, none of which + Ringan heeded in the least. + </p> + <p> + ‘Hist:’ he cried, ‘there’s some one on the road. Come into shelter, sir.’ + </p> + <p> + He was half dragging, half supporting his master to the concealment of the + bushes, when he perceived that the new-comers were two friars, cowled, + black gowned, corded, and barefooted. + </p> + <p> + ‘There will be help in them,’ he muttered, placing his master with his + back against a tree; for the late contention had produced such fresh + exhaustion that it was plain the wounds were more serious than he had + thought at first. + </p> + <p> + The two friars, men with homely, weather-beaten, but simple good faces, + came up, startled at seeing a wounded man on the way-side, and ready to + proffer assistance. + </p> + <p> + Need like George Douglas’s was of all languages, and besides, Ringan had, + among the exigencies of the journey, picked up something by which he could + make himself moderately well understood. The brethren stooped over the + wounded man and examined his wounds. One of them produced some oil from a + flask in his wallet, and though poor George’s own shirt was the only linen + available, they contrived to bandage both hurts far more effectually than + Ringan could. + </p> + <p> + They asked whether this was the effect of a quarrel or the work of + robbers. + </p> + <p> + ‘Routiers,’ Ringan said. ‘The ladies—we guarded them—they + carried them off—up there.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What ladies?—the Scottish princesses?’ asked one of the friars; for + they had been at Nanci, and knew who had been assembled there; besides + that, the Scot was known enough all over France for the nationality of + Ringan and his master to have been perceived at once. + </p> + <p> + George understood this, and answered vehemently, ‘I must follow them and + save them!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘In good time, with the saints’ blessing,’ replied Brother Benigne + soothingly, ‘but healing must come first. We must have you to our poor + house yonder, where you will be well tended.’ + </p> + <p> + George was lifted to the pony’s back, and supported in the saddle by + Ringan and one of the brethren. He had been too much dazed by the cut on + the head to have any clear or consecutive notion as to what they were + doing with him, or what passed round him; and Ringan did his best to + explain the circumstances, and thought it expedient to explain that his + master was ‘Grand Seigneur’ in his own country, and would amply repay + whatever was done for him; the which Brother Gerard gave him to understand + was of no consequence to the sons of St. Francis. The brothers had no + doubt that the outrage was committed by the Balchenburg Baron, the ally of + the ecorcheurs and routiers, the terrors of the country, in his + impregnable castle. No doubt, they said, he meant to demand a heavy ransom + from the good King and Dauphin. For the honour of Scotland, Ringan, though + convinced that Hall had his share in the treason, withheld that part of + the story. To him, and still more to his master, the journey seemed + endless, though in reality it was not more than two miles before they + arrived at a little oasis of wheat and orchards growing round a vine-clad + building of reddish stone, with a spire rising in the midst. + </p> + <p> + Here the porter opened the gate in welcome. The history was volubly told, + the brother-infirmarer was summoned, and the Master of Angus was deposited + in a much softer bed than the good friars allowed themselves. There the + infirmarer tended him in broken feverish sleep all night, Ringan lying on + a pallet near, and starting up at every moan or murmur. But with early + dawn, when the brethren were about to sing prime, the lad rose up, and + between signs and words made them understand that he must be released, + pointing towards the mountains, and comporting himself much like a dog who + wanted to be let out. + </p> + <p> + Perceiving that he meant to follow the track of the ladies, the friars not + only opened the doors to him, but gave him a piece of black barley bread, + with which he shot off, like an arrow from a bow, towards the place where + the catastrophe had taken place. + </p> + <p> + George Douglas’s mind wandered a good deal from the blow on his head, and + it was not till two or three days had elapsed that he was able clearly to + understand what his follower had discovered. Almost with the instinct of a + Red Indian, Ringan had made his way. At first, indeed, the bushes had been + sufficiently trampled for the track to be easy to find, but after the + beech-trees with no underwood had been reached, he had often very slight + indications to guide him. Where the halt had taken place, however, by the + brook-side, there were signs of trampling, and even a few remnants of + food; and after a long climb higher, he had come on the marks of the fall + of a horse, and picked up a piece of a torn veil, which he recognised at + once as belonging to the Lady Joanna. He inferred a struggle. What had + they been doing to her? + </p> + <p> + Faithful Ringan had climbed on, and at length had come below the castle. + He had been far too cautious to show himself while light lasted, but + availing himself of the shelter of trees and of the projections, he had + pretty well reconnoitred the castle as it stood on its steep slopes of + turf, on the rounded summit of the hill, only scarped away on one side, + whence probably the materials had been taken. + </p> + <p> + There could be no doubt that this was the prison of the princesses, and + the character of the Barons of Balchenburg was only too well known to the + good Franciscans. + </p> + <p> + ‘Soevi et feroces,’ said the Prior to George, for Latin had turned out to + be the most available medium of communication. Spite of Scott’s averment + in the mouth of George’s grandson, Bell the Cat, that— + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Thanks to St Bothan, son of mine, + Save Gawain, ne’er could pen a line,’ +</pre> + <p> + the Douglases were far too clever to go without education, and young + nobles who knew anything knew a little Latin. There was a consultation + over what was to be done, and the Prior undertook to send one of his + brethren into Nanci with Ringan, to explain the matter to King Rene, or, + if he had left Nanci for Provence, to the governor left in charge. But a + frontier baron like Balchenburg was a very serious difficulty to one so + scrupulous in his relations with his neighbours as was good King Rene. + </p> + <p> + ‘A man of piety, peace, and learning,’ said the Prior, ‘and therefore + despised by lawless men, like a sheep among wolves, though happy are we in + living under such a prince.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Then what’s the use of him and all his raree shows,’ demanded the Scot, + ‘if he can neither hinder two peaceful maids from being carried off, nor + will stir a finger to deliver them? Much should we heed borders and kings + if it had been a Ridley or a Graeme who had laid hands on them.’ + </p> + <p> + However, he consented to the Prior’s proposal, and the incongruous pair + set out together,—the sober-paced friar on the convent donkey, and + Ringan on his shaggy pony,—both looking to civilised eyes equally + rough and unkempt. At the gates they heard that King Rene had the day + before set forth on his way to Aix, which boded ill for them, since more + might be hoped from the impulsive chivalry of the King than from the + strict scrupulosity of a responsible governor. + </p> + <p> + But they had not gone far on their way across the Place de La Carriere, + where the tournament had been held, before Ringan startled his companion + with a perfect howl, which had in it, however, an element of ecstasy, as + he dashed towards a tall, bony figure in a blue cap, buff coat, and + shepherd’s plaid over one shoulder. + </p> + <p> + ‘Archie o’ the Brake. Archie! Oh, ye’re a sight for sair een! How cam’ ye + here?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Eh!’ was the answer, equally astonished. ‘Wha is it that cries on me + here? Eh! eh! ‘Tis never Ringan of the Raefoot-sae braw and grand?’ + </p> + <p> + For Ringan was a wonderful step before him in civilisation. + </p> + <p> + Queries—‘How cam’ ye here?’ and ‘Whar’ is the Master?’—were + rapidly exchanged, while the friar looked on in amaze at the two + wild-looking men, about whom other tall Scots, more or less well equipped, + began to gather, coming from a hostelry near at hand. + </p> + <p> + The Earl of Angus, as they told him, had been neither to have nor to hold + when first his embassy to Dunbar came back, and his son was found to be + missing. He had been very near besieging the young King, until Bishop + Kennedy had convinced him that no one of the Court had suspected the + Master’s presence, far less connived at his disappearance. The truth had + been suspected before long, though there was no certainty until the letter + that George Douglas had at last vouchsafed to write had, after spending a + good deal of time on the road, at last reached Tantallon. Then the Earl + had declared that, since his son had set out on this fool’s errand, he + should be suitably furnished for the heir of Angus, and should play his + part as became him in their sports at Nanci, whither his letter said he + was bound, instead of figuring as a mere groom of Drummond of Glenuskie, + and still worse, in the train of a low-born Englishman like De la Pole. + </p> + <p> + So he had sent off ten lances, under a stout kinsman who had campaigned in + France before—Sir Robert Douglas of Harside—with all their + followers, and full equipment, such as might befit the heir of a branch of + the great House of the Bleeding Heart. But their voyage had not been + prosperous, and after riding from Flanders they had found the wedding + over, and no one in the hostel having heard of the young Master of Angus, + nor even having distinguished Sir Patrick Drummoud, though there was a + vague idea that the Scottish king’s sisters had been there. + </p> + <p> + Sir Robert Douglas had gone to have an interview with the governor left in + charge. Thus the separation of the party became known to him—how the + Drummonds had gone to Paris, and the Scottish ladies had set forth for + Chalons; but there was nothing to show with whom the Master had gone. No + sooner, then, had he come forth than half his men were round him shouting + that here was Ringan of the Raefoot, that the Master had been foully + betrayed, and that he was lying sair wounded at a Priory not far off. + </p> + <p> + Ringan, a perfectly happy man among those who not only had Scots tongues, + but the Bleeding Heart on shield and breast, was brought up to him and + told of the attack and capture of the princesses, and of the Master’s + wounds. + </p> + <p> + Sir Robert, after many imprecations, turned back to the governor, who + heard the story in a far more complete form than if it had been related to + him by Ringan and the friar. + </p> + <p> + But his hands were tied till he could communicate with King Rene, for + border warfare was strictly forbidden, and unfortunately Duke Sigismund + had left Nanci some days before for Luxembourg to meet the Duke of + Burgundy. + </p> + <p> + However, just as George Douglas had persuaded the infirmarer to let him + put on his clothes, there had been a clanging and jangling in the outer + court, and the Lion and Eagle banner was visible. Duke Sigismund had drawn + up there to water the horses, and to partake of any hospitality the Prior + might offer him. + </p> + <p> + The first civilities were passing between them, when a tall figure, his + red hair crossed by a bandage, his ruddy face paled, his steps faltering, + came stumbling forward to the porch, crying, in his wonderful dialect + between Latin and French, ‘Sire, Domine Dux! Justitia! You loved the Lady + Eleanor. Free her! They are prisoners to latroni—un routier—sceleratissimo—reiver—Balchenburg!’ + </p> + <p> + Sigismund, ponderous and not very rapid, opened wide his big blue eyes, + while the Prior explained in French, ‘It is even so, beau sire. This poor + man-at-arms was found bleeding on the way-side by our brethren, having + been left for dead by the robbers of Balchenburg, who, it seems, descended + on the ladies, dispersed their escort, and carried them off to the + castle.’ + </p> + <p> + Sigismund made some tremendously emphatic exclamation in German, and + turned upon Douglas to interrogate him. They had very little of common + language, but Sigismund knew French, though he hated it, and was not + devoid of Latin, so that the narrative was made tolerably clear to him, + and he had no doubts or scruples as to instantly calling the latrones to + account, and releasing the ladies. He paced up and down the guest-chamber, + his spurs clattering against the stone pavement, growling imprecations in + guttural German, now and then tugging at his long fair hair as he pictured + Eleanor in the miscreants’ power, putting queries to George, more than + could be understood or answered, and halting at door or window to shout + orders to his knights to be ready at once for the attack. George was + absolutely determined that, whatever his own condition, he would not be + left behind, though he could only go upon Ringan’s pony, and was evidently + in Sigismund’s opinion only a faithful groom. + </p> + <p> + It was hard to say whether he was relieved or not when there was evidently + a vehement altercation in German between the Duke and a tough, grizzled + old knight, the upshot of which turned out to be that the Ritter Gebhardt + von Fuchstein absolutely refused to proceed through those pine and beech + forests so late in the day; since it would be only too easy to lose the + way, and there might be ambuscades or the like if Balchenburg and his crew + were on the watch, and there was no doubt that they were allied with all + the rentiers in the country. + </p> + <p> + Sigismund raged, but he was in some degree under the dominion of his + prudent old Marskalk, and had to submit, while George knew that another + night would further restore him, and would besides bring back his + attendant. + </p> + <p> + The next hour brought more than he had expected. Again there was a + clattering of hoofs, a few words with the porter, and to the utter + amazement of the Prior, as well as of Duke Sigismund, who had just been + served with a meal of Franciscan diet, a knight in full armour, with the + crowned heart on his breast, dashed into the hall, threw a hasty bow to + the Prior, and throwing his arms round the wounded man-at-arms, cried + aloud, ‘Geordie—the Master—ye daft callant! See what you have + brought yourself to! What would the Yerl your father say?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I trow that I have been striving to do my devoir to my liege’s sisters,’ + answered George. ‘How does my father?—and my mother? Make your + obeisance to the Duke of the Tirol, Rab. Ye can knap the French with him + better than I. Now I can go with him as becomes a yerl’s son, for the + freedom of the lady!’ + </p> + <p> + Sir Robert, a veteran Scot, who knew the French world well, was soon + explaining matters to Duke Sigismund, who presently advanced to the heir + of Angus, wrung his hand, and gave him to understand that he accepted him + as a comrade in their doughty enterprise, and honoured his proceeding as a + piece of knight-errantry. He was free from any question whether George was + to be esteemed a rival by hearing it was the Lady Joanna for whose sake he + thus adventured himself, whereas it was not her beauty, but her sister’s + intellect that had won the heart of Sigismund. Perhaps Sir Robert somewhat + magnified the grandeur of the house of Douglas, for Sigismund seemed to + view the young man as an equal, which he was not, as the Hapsburgs of + Alsace and the Tirol were sovereign princes; but, on the other hand, + George could count princesses among his ancestresses, and only Jean’s + personal ambition had counted his as a mesalliance. + </p> + <p> + It was determined to advance upon the Castle of Balchenburg the next + morning, the ten Scottish lances being really forty men, making the + Douglas’s troop not much inferior to the Alsatian. + </p> + <p> + A night’s rest greatly restored George, and equipments had been brought + for him, which made him no longer appear only the man-at-arms, but the + gallant young nobleman, though not yet entitled to the Golden Spurs. + </p> + <p> + Ringan served as their guide up the long hills, through the woods, up + steep slippery slopes, where it became expedient to leave behind the big + heavy war-horses under a guard, while the rest pushed forward, the Master + of Angus’s long legs nearly touching the ground, as, not to waste his + strength, he was mounted on Ringan’s sure-footed pony, which seemed at + home among mountains. Sigismund himself, and the Tirolese among his + followers, were chamois-hunters and used enough to climbing, and thus at + length they found themselves at the foot of the green rounded slopes of + the talchen or ballon, crowned by the fortress with its eight + corner-turrets and the broader keep. + </p> + <p> + Were Elleen and Jean looking out—when the Alsatian trumpeter came + forward in full array, and blew three sonorous blasts, echoing among the + mountains, and doubtless bringing hope to the prisoners? The rugged walls + of the castle had, however, an imperturbable look, and there was nothing + responsive at the gateway. + </p> + <p> + A pursuivant then stood forth—for Sigismund had gone in full state + to his intended wooing at Nanci—and called upon the Baron of + Balchenburg to open his gates to his liege lord the Duke of Alsace. + </p> + <p> + On this a wicket was opened in the gate; but the answer, in a hoarse + shout, was that the Baron of Balchenburg owned allegiance only, under the + Emperor Frederick, to King Rene, Duke of Lorraine. + </p> + <p> + What hot words were thereupon spoken between Sigismund, Gebhardt, and the + two Douglases it scarcely needs to tell; but, looking at the strength of + the castle, it was agreed that it would be wiser to couple with the second + summons an assurance that, though Duke Sigismund was the lawful lord of + the mountain, and entrance was denied at the peril of the Baron, yet he + would remit his first wrath, provided the royal ladies, foully and + unjustly detained there in captivity, were instantly delivered up in all + safety. + </p> + <p> + To this the answer came back, with a sound of derisive mockery—One + was the intended wife of Baron Rudiger; the other should be delivered up + to the Duke upon ransom according to her quality. + </p> + <p> + ‘The ransom I will pay,’ roared Sigismund in German, ‘shall be by the axe + and cord!’ + </p> + <p> + The while George Douglas gnashed his teeth with rage when the reply as to + Jean had been translated to him. The Duke hurled his fierce defiance at + the castle. It should be levelled with the ground, and the robbers should + suffer by cord, wheel, and axe. + </p> + <p> + But what was the use of threats against men within six or eight feet every + way of stone wall, with a steep slippery slope leading up to it? Heavily + armed horsemen were of no avail against it. Even if there were nothing but + old women inside, there was no means of making an entrance. Sigismund + possessed three rusty cannon, made of bars of iron hooped together; but + they were no nearer than Strasburg, and if they had been at hand, there + was no getting them within distance of those walls. + </p> + <p> + There was nothing for it but to blockade the castle while sending after + King Rene for assistance and authority. The worst of it was, that starving + the garrison would be starving the captives; and likewise, so far up on + the mountain, a troop of eighty or ninety men and horses were as liable to + lack of provisions as could be the besieged garrison. Villages were + distant, and transport not easy to find. Money was never abundant with + Duke Sigismund, and had nearly all been spent on the entertainments at + Nanci; nor could he make levies as lord of the country-folk, since the + more accessible were not Alsatian, but Lorrainers, and to exasperate their + masters by raids would bring fresh danger. Indeed, the two nearest castles + were on Lorraine territory; their masters had not a much better reputation + than the Balchenburgs, and, with the temptation of war-horses and men in + their most holiday equipment, were only too likely to interpret + Sigismund’s attack as an invasion of their dukedom, and to fall in + strength upon the party. + </p> + <p> + All this Gebhardt represented in strong colours, recommending that this + untenable position should not be maintained. + </p> + <p> + Sigismund swore that nothing should induce him to abandon the unhappy + ladies. + </p> + <p> + ‘Nay, my Lord Duke, it is only to retreat till King Rene sends his forces, + and mayhap the French Dauphin.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘To retreat would be to prolong their misery. Nay, the felons would think + them deserted, and work their will. Out upon such craven counsel!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The captive ladies may be secured from an injury if your lordship holds a + parley, demands the amount of ransom, and, without pledging yourself, + undertakes to consult the Dauphin and their other kinsmen on the matter.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Detained here in I know not what misery, exposed to insults endless? + Never, Gebhardt! I marvel that you can make such proposals to any belted + knight!’ + </p> + <p> + Gebhardt grumbled out, ‘Rather to a demented lover! The Lord Duke will + sing another tune ere long.’ + </p> + <p> + Certainly it looked serious the next day when Sir Robert Douglas had had + the greatest difficulty in hindering a hand-to-hand fight between the + Scots and Alsatians for a strip of meadow land for pasture for their + horses; when a few loaves of black bread were all that could be obtained + from one village, and in another there had been a fray with the peasants, + resulting in blows by way of payment for a lean cow and calf and four + sheep. The Tirolese laid the blame on the Scots, the Scots upon the + Tirolese; and though disputes between his Tirolese and Alsatian followers + had been the constant trouble of Sigismund at Nanci, they now joined in + making common cause against the Scots, so that Gebhardt strongly advised + that these should be withdrawn to Nanci for the present, the which advice + George Douglas hotly resented. He had as good a claim to watch the castle + as the Duke. He was not going to desert his King’s sisters, far less the + lady he had followed from Scotland. If any one was to be ordered off, it + should be the fat lazy Alsatians, who were good for nothing but to ride + big Flemish horses, and were useless on a mountain. + </p> + <p> + Gebhardt and Robert Douglas, both experienced men of the world, found it + one of their difficulties to keep the peace between their young lords; and + each day was likely to render it more difficult. They began to represent + that it could be made a condition that the leaders should be permitted to + see the ladies and ascertain whether they were treated with courtesy; and + there was a certain inclination on Sigismund’s part, when he was driven + hard by his embarrassments, to allow this to be proposed. + </p> + <p> + The very notion of coming to any terms made Geordie furious. If the craven + Dutchman chose to sneak off and go in search of a ransom, forsooth, he + would lie at the foot of the castle till he had burrowed through the walls + or found a way over the battlements. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay,’ said Douglas of Harside drily, ‘or till the Baron sticks you in the + thrapple, or his next neighbour throws you into his dungeon.’ + </p> + <p> + In the meantime the captives themselves were suffering, as may well be + believed, agonies of suspense. Their loophole did not look out towards the + gateway, but they heard the peals of the trumpet, started up with joy, and + thought their deliverance was come. Eleanor threw herself on her knees; + Lady Lindsay began to collect their properties; Jean made a rush for the + stair leading to the top of the turret, but she found her way barred by + one of the few men-at-arms, who held his pike towards her in a menacing + manner. + </p> + <p> + She tried to gaze from the window, but it told her nothing, except that a + certain murmur of voices broke upon the silence of the woods. Nothing more + befell them. They eagerly interrogated Barbe. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah yes, lady birds!’ she said, ‘there is a gay company without, all in + glittering harness, asking for you, but my Lords know ‘tis like a poor + frog smelling at a walnut, for any knight of them all to try to make way + into this castle!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Who are they? For pity’s sake, tell us, dear Barbe,’ entreated Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + ‘They say it is the Duke himself; but he has never durst meddle with my + Lords before. All but the Hawk’s tower is in Lorraine, and my Lord can + bring a storm about his ears if he lifts a finger against us. A messenger + would soon bring Banget and Steintour upon him. But never you fear, fair + ladies, you have friends, and he will come to terms,’ said good old Barbe, + divided between pity for her guests and loyalty to her masters. + </p> + <p> + ‘If it is the Duke, he will free you, Elleen,’ said Jean weeping; ‘he will + not care for me!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Jeanie, Jeanie, could you think I would be set free without you?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘You might not be able to help yourself. ‘Tis you that the German wants.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Never shall he have me if he be such a recreant, mansworn fellow as to + leave my sister to the reiver. Never!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! if poor Geordie were there, he would have moved heaven and earth to + save me; but there is none to heed me now,’ and Jean fell into a passion + of weeping. + </p> + <p> + When they had to go down to supper, the younger Baron received them with + the news—‘So, ladies, the Duke has been shouting his threats at us, + but this castle is too hard a nut for the like of him.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I have seen others crack their teeth against it,’ said his father; and + they both laughed, a hoarse derisive laugh. + </p> + <p> + The ladies vouchsafed not a word till they were allowed to retire to their + chamber. + </p> + <p> + They listened in the morning for the sounds of an assault, but none came; + there was absolutely nothing but an occasional hum of voices and clank of + armour. When summoned to the mid-day meal, it was scanty. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay,’ said the elder Baron, we shall have to live hard for a day or two, + but those outside will live harder.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Till they fall out and cut one another’s throats,’ said his son. ‘Fasting + will not mend the temper of Hans of Schlingen and Michel au Bec rouge.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Or till Banget descends on him for meddling on Lorraine ground,’ added + old Balchenburg. ‘Eat, lady,’ he added to Jean; ‘your meals are not so + large that they will make much odds to our stores. We have corn and beer + enough to starve out those greedy knaves outside!’ + </p> + <p> + Poor Jean was nearly out of her senses with distress and uncertainty, and + being still weak, was less able to endure. She burst into violent + hysterical weeping, and had to be helped up to her own room, where she + sometimes lay on her bed; sometimes raged up and down the room, heaping + violent words on the head of the tardy cowardly German; sometimes talking + of loosing Skywing to show they were in the castle and cognisant of what + was going on; but it was not certain that Skywing, with the lion rampant + on his hood, would fly down to the besiegers, so that she would only be + lost. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor, by the very need of soothing her sister, was enabled to be more + tranquil. Besides, there was pleasure in the knowledge that Sigismund had + come after her, and there was imagination enough in her nature to trust to + the true knight daring any amount of dragons in his lady’s cause. And the + lady always had to be patient. + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0011" id="link2HCH0011"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 11. FETTERS BROKEN + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + Then long and loud the victor shout + From turret and from tower rang out; + The rugged walls replied. + SCOTT, Lord of the Isles. +</pre> + <p> + ‘Sir, I have something to show you.’ + </p> + <p> + It was the early twilight of a summer’s morning when Ringan crept up to + the shelter of pine branches under which George Douglas was sleeping, + after hotly opposing Gebhardt, who had nearly persuaded his master that + retreat was inevitable, unless he meant to be deserted by more than half + his men. + </p> + <p> + George sat up. ‘Anent the ladies?’ he said. + </p> + <p> + Ringan bowed his head, with an air of mystery and George doubted no + longer, but let him lead the way, keeping among the brushwood to the foot + of the quarry whence the castle had been built. It had once been + absolutely precipitous, no doubt, but the stone was of a soft quality, on + which weather told: ivy and creepers had grown on it, and Ringan pointed + to what to dwellers on plains might have seemed impracticable, but to + those who had bird’s-nested on the crags of Tantallon had quite a + different appearance. True, there was castle wall and turret above, but on + this, the weather side, there had likewise been a slight crumbling, which + had been neglected, perhaps from over security, perhaps on account of the + extreme difficulty of repairing, where there was the merest ledge for + foothold above the precipitous quarry; indeed, the condition of the place + might never even have been perceived by the inhabitants, as there were no + traces of the place below having been frequented. + </p> + <p> + ‘Tis a mere staircase as far as the foot of the walls compared with the + Guillemot’s crag,’ observed Ringan. + </p> + <p> + ‘And a man with a heart and a foot could be up the wall in the corner + where the ivy grows,’ added George. ‘It is well, Ringan, thou hast done + good service. Here is the way.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘With four or five of our own tall carles, we may win the castle, and + laugh at the German pock-puddings,’ added Ringan. ‘Let them gang their + gate, and we’ll free our leddies.’ + </p> + <p> + George was tempted, but he shook his head. ‘That were scarce knightly + towards the Duke,’ he said. ‘He has been gude friend to me, and I may not + thus steal a march on him. Moreover, we ken na the strength of the loons + within.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I misdoot there being mair than ten of them,’ said Ringan. ‘I have seen + the same faces too often for there to be many. And what there be we shall + take napping.’ + </p> + <p> + That was true; nevertheless George Douglas felt bound in honour not to + undertake the enterprise without the cognisance of his ally, though he + much doubted the Germans being alert or courageous enough to take + advantage of such a perilous clamber. + </p> + <p> + Sigismund had a tent under the pine-trees, and a guard before the + entrance, who stood, halbert in hand, like a growling statue, when the + young Scot would have entered, understanding not one word of his + objurgations in mixed Scotch and French, but only barring the way, till + Sigismund’s own ‘Wer da?’ sounded from within. + </p> + <p> + ‘Moi—George of Angus!’ shouted that individual in his awkward + French. ‘Let me in, Sir Duke; I have tidings!’ + </p> + <p> + Sigismund was on foot in a moment. ‘And from King Eene?’ he asked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Far better, strong heart and steady foot can achieve the adventure and + save the ladies unaided! Come with me, beau sire! Silently.’ + </p> + <p> + George had fully expected to see the German quail at the frightful + precipice and sheer wall before him, but the Hapsburg was primarily a + Tirolean mountaineer, and he measured the rock with a glistening + triumphant eye. + </p> + <p> + ‘Man can,’ he said. ‘That will we. Brave sire, your hand on it.’ + </p> + <p> + The days were almost at their longest, and it was about five in the + morning, the sun only just making his way over the screen of the higher + hills to the north-east, though it had been daylight for some time. + </p> + <p> + Prudence made the two withdraw under the shelter of the woods, and there + they built their plan, both young men being gratified to do so without + their two advisers. + </p> + <p> + Neither of them doubted his own footing, and George was sure that three or + four of the men who had come with Sir Robert were equally good cragsmen. + Sigismund sighed for some Tirolese whom he had left at home, but he had at + least one man with him ready to dare any height; and he thought a rope + would make all things sure. Nothing could be attempted till the next + night, or rather morning, and Sigismund decided on sending a messenger + down to the Franciscans to borrow or purchase a rope, while George and + Ringan, more used to shifts, proceeded to twist together all the horses’ + halters they could collect, so as to form a strong cable. + </p> + <p> + To avert suspicion, Sigismund appeared to have yielded to the murmurs of + his people, and sent more than half his troop down the hill, in the + expectation that he was about to follow. The others were withdrawn under + one clump of wood, the Scotsmen under another, with orders to advance upon + the gateway of the castle so soon as they should hear a summons from the + Duke’s bugle, or the cry, ‘A Douglas!’ Neither Sir Gebhardt nor Sir Robert + was young enough or light enough to attempt the climb, each would fain + have withheld his master, had it been possible, but they would have their + value in dealing with the troop waiting below. + </p> + <p> + So it came to pass that when Eleanor, anxious, sorrowful, heated, and + weary, awoke at daydawn and crept from the side of her sleeping sister to + inhale a breath of morning breeze and murmur a morning prayer, as she + gazed from her loophole over the woods with a vague, never-quenchable hope + of seeing something, she became aware of something very stealthy below—the + rustling of a fox, or a hare in the fern mayhap, though she could not see + to the bottom of the quarry, but she clung to the bar, craned forward, and + beheld far down a shaking of the ivy and white-flowered rowan; then a + hand, grasping the root of a little sturdy birch, then a yellow head + gradually drawn up, till a thin, bony, alert figure was for a moment + astride on the birch. Reaching higher, the sunburnt, freckled face was + lifted up, and Eleanor’s heart gave a great throb of hope. Was it not the + wild boy, Ringan Raefoot? She could not turn away her head, she durst not + even utter a word to those within, lest it should be a mere fancy, or a + lad from the country bird’s-nesting. Higher, higher he went, lost for a + moment among the leaves and branches, then attaining a crag, in some giddy + manner. But, but—what was that head under a steel cap that had + appeared on the tree? What was that face raised for a moment? Was it the + face of the dead? Eleanor forced back a cry, and felt afraid of wakening + herself from what she began to think only a blissful dream,—all the + more when that length of limb had reared itself, and attained to the dizzy + crag above. A fairer but more solid face, with a long upper lip, appeared, + mounting in its turn. She durst not believe her eyes, and she was not + conscious of making any sound, unless it was the vehement beating of her + own heart; but perhaps it was the power of her own excitement that + communicated itself to her sleeping sister, for Jean’s voice was heard, + ‘What is it, Elleen; what is it?’ + </p> + <p> + She signed back with her hand to enjoin silence, for her sense began to + tell her that this must be reality, and that castles had before now been + thus surprised by brave Scotsmen. Jean was out of bed and at the loophole + in a moment. There was room for only one, and Eleanor yielded the place, + the less reluctantly that the fair head had reached the part veiled by the + tree, and Jean’s eyes would be an evidence that she herself might trust + her own sight. + </p> + <p> + Jean’s glance first fell on the backs of the ascending figures, now above + the crag. ‘Ah! ah!’ she cried, under her breath, ‘a surprise—a + rescue! Oh! the lad—stretching, spreading! The man below is holding + his foot. Oh! that tuft of grass won’t bear him. His knees are up. Yes—yes! + he is even with the top of the wall now. Elleen! Hope! Brave laddie! Why—‘tis—yes—‘tis + Ringan. Now the other, the muckle carle—Ah!’ and then a sudden + breathless silence came over her. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor knew she had recognised that figure! + </p> + <p> + Madame de Ste. Petronelle was awake now, asking what this meant. + </p> + <p> + ‘Deliverance!’ whispered Eleanor. ‘They are scaling the wall. Oh, Jean, + one moment—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I canna, I canna,’ cried Jean, grasping the iron bar with all her might: + ‘I see his face; he is there on the ledge, at fit of the wall, in life and + strength. Ringan—yes, Ringan is going up the wall like a cat!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Where is he? Is he safe—the Duke, I would say?’ gasped Eleanor. + ‘Oh, let me see, Jeanie.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The Duke, is it? Ah! Geordie is giving a hand to help him on the ground. + Tak’ tent, tak’ tent, Geordie. Dinna coup ower. Ah! they are baith there, + and one—two—three muckle fellows are coming after them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Climbing up there!’ exclaimed the Dame, bustling up. ‘God speed them. + Those are joes worth having, leddies!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There! there—Geordie is climbing now. St. Bride speed him, and hide + them. Well done, Duke! He hoisted him so far. Now his hand is on that + broken stone. Up! up! His foot is in the cleft now! His hand—oh!—clasps + the ivy! God help him! Ah, he feels about. Yes, he has it. Now—now + the top of the battlement. I see no more. They are letting down a rope. + Your Duke disna climb like my Geordie, Elleen!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, for mercy’s sake, to your prayers, dinna wrangle about your joes, + bairns,’ cried Madame de Ste. Petronelle. ‘The castle’s no won yet!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘But is as good as won,’ said Eleanor. ‘There are barely twelve fighting + men in it, and sorry loons are the maist. How many are up yet, Jeanie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘There’s a fifth since the Duke yet to come up,’ answered Jean, ‘eight + altogether, counting the gallant Ringan. There!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘’Tis the warder’s horn. They have been seen!’ and the poor women clasped + their hands in fervent prayer, with ears intent; but Jean suddenly darted + towards her clothes, and they hastily attired themselves, then cautiously + peeped out at their door, since neither sight nor sound came to them from + either window. The guard who had hindered their passage was no longer + there, and Jean led the way down the spiral stairs. At the slit looking + into the court they heard cries and the clash of arms, but it was too high + above their heads for anything to be seen, and they hastened on. + </p> + <p> + There also in the narrow court was a fight going on—but nearly + ended. Geordie Douglas knelt over the prostrate form of Rudiger von + Balchenburg, calling on him to yield, but meeting no answer. One or two + other men lay overthrown, three or four more were pressed up against a + wall, howling for mercy. Sigismund was shouting to them in German—Ringan + and the other assailants standing guard over them; but evidently hardly + withheld from slaughtering them. The maidens stood for a moment, then + Jean’s scream of welcome died on her lips, for as he looked up from his + prostrate foe, and though he had not yet either spoken or risen, Sigismund + had stepped to his side, and laid his sword on his shoulder. + </p> + <p> + ‘Victor!’ said he, ‘in the name of God and St. Mary, I make thee + Chevalier. Rise, Sire George of Douglas!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘True knight!’ cried Jean, leaping to his side. ‘Oh, Geordie, Geordie, + thou hast saved us! Thou noblest knight!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! Lady, it canna be helpit,’ said the new knight. ‘’Tis no treason to + your brother to be dubbed after a fair fight, though ‘tis by a Dutch + prince.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Thy King’s sister shall mend that, and bind your spurs,’ said Jean. ‘Is + the reiver dead, Geordie?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Even so,’ was the reply. ‘My sword has spared his craig from the halter.’ + </p> + <p> + Such were the times, and such Jean’s breeding, that she looked at the + fallen enemy much as a modern lady may look at a slain tiger. + </p> + <p> + Eleanor had meantime met Sigismund with, ‘Ah! well I knew that you would + come to our aid. So true a knight must achieve the adventure!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Safe, safe, I am blessed and thankful,’ said the Duke, falling on one + knee to kiss her hand. ‘How have these robbers treated my Lady?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Well, as well as they know how. That good woman has been very kind to + us,’ said Eleanor, as she saw Barbe peeping from the stair. ‘Come hither, + Barbe and Trudchen, to the Lord Duke’s mercy.’ + </p> + <p> + They were entering the hall, and, at the same moment, the gates were + thrown open, and the men waiting with Gebhardt and Robert Douglas began to + pour in. It was well for Barbe and her daughter that they could take + shelter behind the ladies, for the men were ravenous for some prize, or + something to wreak their excitement upon, besides the bare walls of the + castle, and its rude stores of meal and beer. The old Baron was hauled + down from his bed by half-a-dozen men, and placed before the Duke with + bound hands. + </p> + <p> + ‘Hola, Siege!’ said he in German, all unabashed. ‘You have got me at last—by + a trick! I always bade Rudiger look to that quarry; but young men think + they know best.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The old traitor!’ said George in French. ‘Hang him from his tower for a + warning to his like, as we should do in Scotland.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘What cause have you to show why we should not do as saith the knight?’ + said Sigismund. + </p> + <p> + ‘I care little how it goes with my old carcase now,’ returned Balchenburg, + in the spirit of the Amalekite of old. ‘I only mourn that I shall not be + there to see the strife you will breed with the lute-twanger or his + fellows at Nanci.’ + </p> + <p> + Gebhardt here gave his opinion that it would be wise to reserve the old + man for King Rene’s justice, so as to obviate all peril of dissension. The + small garrison, to be left in the castle under the most prudent knight + whom Gebhardt could select, were instructed only to profess to hold it + till the Lords of Alsace and Lorraine should jointly have determined what + was to be done with it. + </p> + <p> + It was not expedient to tarry there long. A hurried meal was made, and + then the victors set out on the descent. George had found his good steed + in the stables, together with the ladies’ palfreys, and there had been + great joy in the mutual recognition; but Jean’s horse was found to show + traces of its fall, and her arm was not yet entirely recovered, so that + she was seated on Ringan’s sure-footed pony, with the new-made knight + walking by her side to secure its every step, though Ringan grumbled that + Sheltie would be far safer if left to his own wits. + </p> + <p> + Sigismund was proposing to make for Sarrebourg, when the glittering of + lances was seen in the distance, and the troop was drawn closely together, + for the chance that, as had been already thought probable, some of the + Lorrainers had risen as to war and invasion. However, the banner soon + became distinguishable, with the many quarterings, showing that King Rene + was there in person; and Sigismund rode forward to greet him and explain. + </p> + <p> + The chivalrous King was delighted with the adventure, only wishing he had + shared in the rescue of the captive princesses. ‘Young blood,’ he said. + ‘Youth has all the guerdons reserved for it, while age is lagging behind.’ + </p> + <p> + Yet so soon as Sir Patrick Drummond had overtaken him at Epinal, he had + turned back to Nanci, and it was in consequence of what he there heard + that he had set forth to bring the robbers of Balchenburg to reason. To + him there was no difficulty in accepting thankfully what some would have + regarded as an aggression on the part of the Duke of Alsace, and though + old Balchenburg, when led up before him, seemed bent upon aggravating him. + ‘Ha! Sir King, so a young German and a wild Scot have done what you, with + all your kingdoms, have never had the wit to do.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The poor old man is distraught,’ said the King, while Sigismund put in— + </p> + <p> + ‘Mayhap because you never ventured on such audacious villainy and + outrecuidance before.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Young blood will have its way,’ repeated the old man. ‘Nay, I told the + lad no good would come of it, but he would have it that he had his + backers, and in sooth that escort played into his hands. Ha! ha! much will + the fair damsels’ royal beau-frere thank you for overthrowing his plan for + disposing of them.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Hark you, foul-mouthed fellow,’ said King Rene; ‘did I not pity you for + your bereavement and ruin, I should requite that slander of a noble prince + by hanging you on the nearest tree.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Your Grace is kindly welcome,’ was the answer. + </p> + <p> + Rene and Sigismund, however, took counsel together, and agreed that the + old man should, instead of this fate, be relegated to an abbey, where he + might at least have the chance of repenting of his crimes, and be kept in + safe custody. + </p> + <p> + ‘That’s your mercy,’ muttered the old mountain wolf when he heard their + decision. + </p> + <p> + All this was settled as they rode back along the way where Madame de Ste. + Petronelle had first become alarmed. She had now quite resumed her + authority and position, and promised protection and employment to Barbe + and Trudchen. The former had tears for ‘her boy,’ thus cut off in his + sins; but it was what she always foreboded for him, and if her old master + was not thankful for the grace offered him, she was for him. + </p> + <p> + King Rene, who believed not a word against his nephew, intended himself to + conduct the ladies to the Court of his sister, and see them in safety + there. Jean, however, after the first excitement, so drooped as she rode, + and was so entirely unable to make answer to all the kindness around her, + that it was plain that she must rest as soon as possible, and thus + hospitality was asked at a little country castle, around which the suite + encamped. A pursuivant was, however, despatched by Rene to the French + Court to announce the deliverance of the princesses, and Sir Patrick sent + his son David with the party, that his wife and the poor Dauphiness might + be fully reassured. + </p> + <p> + There was a strange stillness over Chateau le Surry when David rode in + triumphantly at the gate. A Scottish archer, who stood on guard, looked up + at him anxiously with the words, ‘Is it weel with the lassies?’ and on his + reply, ‘They are sain and safe, thanks, under Heaven, to Geordie Douglas + of Angus!’ the man exclaimed, ‘On, on, sir squire, the saints grant ye may + not be too late for the puir Dolfine! Ah! but she has been sair + misguided.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Is my mother here?’ asked David. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, sir, and with the puir lady. Ye may gang in without question. A’ the + doors be open, that ilka loon may win in to see a princess die.’ + </p> + <p> + The pursuivant, hearing that the King and Dauphin were no longer in the + castle, rode on to Chalons, but David dismounted, and followed a stream of + persons, chiefly monks, friars, and women of the burgher class, up the + steps, and on into the vaulted room, the lower part shut off by a rail, + against which crowded the curious and only half-awed multitude, who + whispered to each other, while above, at a temporary altar, bright with + rows of candles, priests intoned prayers. The atmosphere was insufferably + hot, and David could hardly push forward; but as he exclaimed in his + imperfect French that he came with tidings of Madame’s sisters, way was + made, and he heard his mother’s voice. ‘Is it? Is it my son? Bring him. + Oh, quickly!’ + </p> + <p> + He heard a little, faint, gasping cry, and as a lane was opened for him, + struggled onwards. In poor Margaret’s case the etiquette that banished the + nearest kin from Royalty in articulo mortis was not much to be regretted. + David saw her—white, save for the death-flush called up by the + labouring breath, as she lay upheld in his mother’s arms, a priest holding + a crucifix before her, a few ladies kneeling by the bed. + </p> + <p> + ‘Good tidings, I see, my son,’ said Lady Drummond. + </p> + <p> + ‘Are—they—here?’ gasped Margaret. + </p> + <p> + ‘Alack, not yet, Madame; they will come in a few days’ time.’ She gave a + piteous sigh, and David could not hear her words. + </p> + <p> + ‘Tell her how and where you found them,’ said his mother. + </p> + <p> + David told his story briefly. There was little but a quivering of the + heavy eyelids and a clasping of the hands to show whether the dying woman + marked him, but when he had finished, she said, so low that only his + mother heard, ‘Safe! Thank God! Nunc dimittis. Who was it—young + Angus?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Even so,’ said David, when the question had been repeated to him by his + mother. + </p> + <p> + ‘So best!’ sighed Margaret. ‘Bid the good father give thanks.’ + </p> + <p> + Dame Lilias dismissed her son with a sign. Margaret lay far more serene. + For a few minutes there was a sort of hope that the good news might + inspire fresh life, and yet, after the revelation of what her condition + was in this strange, frivolous, hard-hearted Court, how could life be + desired for her weary spirit? She did not seem to wish—far less to + struggle to wish—to live to see them again; perhaps there was an + instinctive feeling that, in her weariness, there was no power of rousing + herself, and she would rather sink undisturbed than hear of the terror and + suffering that she knew but too well her husband had caused. + </p> + <p> + Only, when it was very near the last, she said, ‘Safe! safe in leal hands. + Oh, tell my Jeanie to be content with them—never seek earthly crowns—ashes—ashes—Elleen—Jeanie—all + of them—my love-oh! safe, safe. Now, indeed, I can pardon—’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Pardon!’ said the French priest, catching the word. ‘Whom, Madame, the + Sieur de Tillay?’ + </p> + <p> + Even on the gasping lips there was a semi-smile. ‘Tillay—I had + forgotten! Tillay, yes, and another.’ + </p> + <p> + If no one else understood, Lady Drummond did, that the forgiveness was for + him who had caused the waste and blight of a life that might have been so + noble and so sweet, and who had treacherously prepared a terrible fate for + her young innocent sisters. + </p> + <p> + It was all ended now; there was no more but to hear the priest commend the + parting Christian soul, while, with a few more faint breaths, the soul of + Margaret of Scotland passed beyond the world of sneers, treachery, and + calumny, to the land ‘where the wicked cease from troubling, and where the + weary are at rest.’ + </p> + <p> + <a name="link2HCH0012" id="link2HCH0012"> + <!-- H2 anchor --> </a> + </p> + <div style="height: 4em;"> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </div> + <h2> + CHAPTER 12. SORROW ENDED + </h2> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + ‘Done to death by slanderous tongues + Was the Hero that here lies: + Death, avenger of wrongs, + Gives her fame which never dies.’ + Much Ado About Nothing. +</pre> + <p> + A day’s rest revived Jean enough to make her eager to push on to Chalons, + and enough likewise to revive her coquettish and petulant temper. + </p> + <p> + Sigismund and Eleanor might ride on together in a species of paradise, as + having not only won each other’s love, but acted out a bit of the romance + that did not come to full realisation much more often in those days than + in modern ones. They were quite content to let King Rene glory in them + almost as much as he had arrived at doing in his own daughter and her + Ferry, and they could be fully secure; Sigismund had no one’s consent to + ask, save a formal licence from his cousin, the Emperor Frederick III., + who would pronounce him a fool for wedding a penniless princess, but had + no real power over him; while Eleanor was certain that all her kindred + would feel that she was fulfilling her destiny, and high sweet thoughts of + thankfulness and longing to be a blessing to him who loved her, and to + those whom he ruled, filled her spirit as she rode through the shady woods + and breezy glades, bright with early summer. + </p> + <p> + Jean, however, was galled by the thought that every one at home would + smile and say that she might have spared her journey, and that, in spite + of all her beauty, she had just ended by wedding the Scottish laddie whom + she had scorned. True, her heart knew that she loved him and none other, + and that he truly merited her; but her pride was not willing that he + should feel that he had earned her as a matter of course, and she was + quite as ungracious to Sir George Douglas, the Master of Angus, as ever + she had been to Geordie of the Red Peel, and she showed all the petulance + of a semi-convalescent. She would not let him ride beside her, his horse + made her palfrey restless, she said; and when King Rene talked about her + true knight, she pretended not to understand. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah!’ he said, ‘be consoled, brave sire; we all know it is the part of the + fair lady to be cruel and merciless. Let me sing you a roman both sad and + true!’ + </p> + <p> + Which good-natured speech simply irritated George beyond bearing. ‘The + daft old carle,’ muttered he to Sir Patrick, ‘why cannot he let me gang my + ain gate, instead of bringing all their prying eyes on me? If Jean casts + me off the noo, it will be all his fault.’ + </p> + <p> + These small vexations, however, soon faded out of sight when the drooping, + half-hoisted banner was seen on the turrets of Chateau le Surry, and the + clang of a knell came slow and solemn on the wind. + </p> + <p> + No one was at first visible, but probably a warder had announced their + approach, for various figures issued from the gateway, some coming up to + Rene, and David Drummond seeking his father. The tidings were in one + moment made known to the two poor girls—a most sudden shock, for + they had parted with their sister in full health, as they thought, and Sir + Patrick had only supposed her to have been chilled by the thunderstorm. + Yet Eleanor’s first thought was, ‘Ah! I knew it! Would that I had clung + closer to her and never been parted.’ But the next moment she was startled + by a cry—Jean had slid from her horse, fainting away in George + Douglas’s arms. + </p> + <p> + Madame de Ste. Petronelle was at hand, and the Lady of Glenuskie quickly + on the spot; and they carried her into the hall, where she revived, and + soon was in floods of tears. These were the days when violent + demonstration was unchecked and admired as the due of the deceased, and + all stood round, weeping with her. King Charles himself leaning forward to + wring her hands, and cry, ‘My daughter, my good daughter!’ As soon as the + first tempest had subsided, the King supported Eleanor to the chapel, + where, in the midst of rows of huge wax candles, Margaret lay with placid + face, and hands clasped over a crucifix, as if on a tomb, the pall that + covered all except her face embellished at the sides with the blazonry of + France and Scotland. Her husband, with his thin hands clasped, knelt by + her head, and requiems were being sung around by relays of priests. There + was fresh weeping and wailing as the sisters cast sprinklings of holy + water on her, and then Jean, sinking down quite exhausted, was supported + away to a chamber where the sisters could hear the story of these last sad + days from Lady Drummond. + </p> + <p> + The solemnities of Margaret’s funeral took their due course—a + lengthy one, and then, or rather throughout, there was the consideration + what was to come next. Too late, all the Court seemed to have wakened to + regret for Margaret. She had been open-handed and kindly, and the + attendants had loved her, while the ladies who had gossiped about her + habits now found occupation for their tongues in indignation against + whosoever had aspersed her discretion. The King himself, who had always + been lazily fond of the belle fille who could amuse him, was stirred, + perhaps by Rene, into an inquiry into the scandalous reports, the result + of which was that Jamet de Tillay was ignominiously banished from the + Court, and Margaret’s fair fame vindicated, all too late to save her heart + from breaking. The displeasure that Charles expressed to his son in + private on the score of poor Margaret’s wrongs, is, in fact, believed to + have been the beginning of the breach which widened continually, till + finally the unhappy father starved himself to death in a morbid dread of + being poisoned by his son. + </p> + <p> + However, for the present, the two Scottish princesses reaped the full + benefit of all the feeling for their sister. The King and Queen called + them their dearest daughters, and made all sorts of promises of marrying + and endowing them, and Louis himself went outwardly through all the forms + of mourning and devotion, and treated his two fair sisters with extreme + civility, such as they privately declared they could hardly bear, when + they recollected how he had behaved before Margaret. + </p> + <p> + Jean in especial flouted him with all the sharpness and pertness of which + she was capable; but do what she would, he received it all with a smiling + indifference and civility which exasperated her all the more. + </p> + <p> + The Laird and Lady of Glenuskie were in some difficulty. They could not + well be much longer absent from Scotland, and yet Lilias had promised the + poor Dauphiness not to leave her sisters except in some security. + Eleanor’s fate was plain enough, Sigismund followed her about as her + betrothed, and the only question was whether, during the period of + mourning, he should go back to his dominions to collect a train worthy of + his marriage with a king’s daughter; but this he was plainly reluctant to + do. Besides the unwillingness of a lover to lose sight of his lady, the + catastrophe that had befallen the sisters might well leave a sense that + they needed protection. Perhaps, too, he might expect murmurs at his + choice of a dowerless princess from his vassals of the Tirol. + </p> + <p> + At any rate, he lingered and accompanied the Court to Tours, where in the + noble old castle the winter was to be spent. + </p> + <p> + There Sir Patrick and his wife were holding a consultation. Their means + were well-nigh exhausted. What they had collected for their journey was + nearly spent, and so was the sum with which Cardinal Beaufort had + furnished his nieces. It was true that Eleanor and Jean were reckoned as + guests of the French King, and the knight and lady and attendants as part + of their suite; but the high proud Scottish spirits could not be easy in + this condition, and they longed to depart, while still by selling the + merely ornamental horses and some jewels they could pay their journey. But + then Jean remained a difficulty. To take her back to Scotland was the most + obvious measure, where she could marry George of Angus as soon as the + mourning was ended. + </p> + <p> + ‘Even if she will have him,’ said Dame Lilias, ‘I doubt me whether her + proud spirit will brook to go home unwedded.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Dost deem the lassie is busking herself for higher game? That were an + evil requital for his faithful service and gallant daring.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I cannot tell,’ said Lilias. ‘The maid has always been kittle to deal + with. I trow she loves Geordie in her inmost heart, but she canna thole to + feel herself bound to him, and it irks her that when her sisters are + wedded to sovereign princes, she should gang hame to be gudewife to a mere + Scots Earl’s son.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The proud unthankful peat! Leave her to gang her ain gate, Lily. And yet + she is a bonny winsome maid, that I canna cast off.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Nor I, Patie, and I have gi’en my word to her sister. Yet gin some prince + cam’ in her way, I’d scarce give much for Geordie’s chance.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘The auld king spake once to me of his younger son, the Duke of Berry, as + they call him,’ said Sir Patrick; ‘but the Constable told me that was all + froth, the young duke must wed a princess with a tocher.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘I trust none will put it in our Jeanie’s light brain,’ sighed Lily, ‘or + she will be neither to have nor to hold.’ + </p> + <p> + The consultation was interrupted by the sudden bursting in of Jean + herself. She flew up to her friends with outstretched hands, and hid her + face in Lilias’s lap. + </p> + <p> + ‘Oh, cousins, cousins! tak’ me away out of his reach. He has been the + death of poor Meg, now he wants to be mine.’ + </p> + <p> + They could not understand her at first, and indeed shame as well as dismay + made her incoherent—for what had been proposed to her was at that + time unprecedented. It is hard to believe it, yet French historians aver + that the Dauphin Louis actually thought of obtaining a dispensation for + marrying her. In the unsettled condition of the Church, when it was + divided by the last splinterings, as it were, of the great schism, perhaps + the astute Louis deemed that any prince might obtain anything from + whichever rival Pope he chose to acknowledge, though it was reserved for + Alexander Borgia to grant the first licence of this kind. To Jean the idea + was simply abhorrent, alike as regarded her instincts and for the sake of + the man himself. His sneering manner towards her sister had filled her + with disgust and indignation, and he had, in those days, been equally + contemptuous towards herself—besides which she was aware of his + share in her capture by Balchenburg, and whispers had not respected the + manner in which his silence had fostered the slanders that had broken + Margaret’s heart. + </p> + <p> + ‘I would sooner wed a viper!’ she said. + </p> + <p> + What was Louis’s motive it is very hard to guess. Perhaps there was some + real admiration of Jean’s beauty, and it seems to have been his desire + that his wife should be a nonentity, as was shown in his subsequent choice + of Charlotte of Savoy. Now Jean was in feature very like her sister + Isabel, Duchess of Brittany, who was a very beautiful woman, but not far + from being imbecile, and Louis had never seen Jean display any superiority + of intellect or taste like Margaret or Eleanor, but rather impatience of + their pursuits, and he therefore might expect her to be equally simple + with the other sister. However that might be, Sir Patrick was utterly + incredulous; but when his wife asked Madame Ste. Petronelle’s opinion, she + shook her head, and said the Sire Dauphin was a strange ower cannie chiel, + and advised that Maitre Jaques Coeur should be consulted. + </p> + <p> + ‘Who may he be?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ken ye not Jaques Coeur? The great merchant of Bourges—the man to + whom, above all others, France owes it that we be not under the English + yoke. The man, I say, for it was the poor Pucelle that gave the first + move, and ill enough was her reward, poor blessed maiden as she was. A + saint must needs die a martyr’s death, and they will own one of these days + that such she was! But it was Maitre Coeur that stirred the King and gave + him the wherewithal to raise his men—lending, they called it, but it + was out of the free heart of a true Frenchman who never looked to see it + back again, nor even thanks for it!’ + </p> + <p> + ‘A merchant?’ asked Sir Patrick. + </p> + <p> + ‘Ay, the mightiest merchant in the realm. You would marvel to see his + house at Bourges. It would fit a prince! He has ships going to Egypt and + Africa, and stores of silk enough to array all the dames and demoiselles + in France! Jewels fit for an emperor, perfumes like a very grove of + camphire. Then he has mines of silver and copper, and the King has given + him the care of the coinage. Everything prospers that he sets his hand to, + and he well deserves it, for he is an honest man where honest men are + few.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Is he here?’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Yea; I saw his green hood crossing the court of the castle this very + noon. The King can never go on long without him, though there are those + that so bate him that I fear he may have a fall one of these days. + Methinks I heard that he ay hears his morning mass when here at the little + chapel of St. James, close to the great shrine of St. Martin, at six of + the clock in the morning, so as to be private. You might find him there, + and whatever he saith to you will be sooth, whether it be as you would + have it, or no.’ + </p> + <p> + On consideration Sir Patrick decided to adopt the lady’s advice, and on + her side she reflected that it might be well to take care that the + interview did not fail for want of recognition. + </p> + <p> + The glorious Cathedral of Tours was standing up dark, but with glittering + windows, from the light within deepening the stained glass, and throwing + out the beauty of the tracery, while the sky, brightening in the autumn + morning, threw the towers into relief, when, little recking of all this + beauty, only caring to find the way, Sir Patrick on the one hand, the old + Scots French lady on the other, went their way to the noble west front, + each wrapped in a long cloak, and not knowing one another, till their eyes + met as they gave each other holy water at the door, after the habit of + strangers entering at the same time. + </p> + <p> + Then Madame de Ste. Petronelle showed the way to the little side chapel, + close to the noble apse. There, beneath the six altar-candles, a priest + was hurrying through a mass in a rapid ill-pronounced manner, while, + besides his acolyte, worshippers were very few. Only the light fell on the + edges of a dark-green velvet cloak and silvered a grizzled head bowed in + reverence, and Madame de Ste. Petronelle touched Sir Patrick and made him + a significant sign. + </p> + <p> + Daylight was beginning to reveal itself by the time the brief service was + over. Sir Patrick, stimulated by the lady, ventured a few steps forward, + and accosted Maitre Coeur as he rose, and drawing forward his hood was + about to leave the church. + </p> + <p> + ‘Beau Sire, a word with you. I am the kinsman and attendant of the + Scottish King’s sisters.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Ah! one of them is to be married. My steward is with me. It is to him you + should speak of her wardrobe,’ said Jaques Coeur, an impatient look + stealing over his keen but honest visage. + </p> + <p> + ‘It is not of Duke Sigismund’s betrothed that I would speak,’ returned the + Scottish knight; ‘it is of her sister.’ + </p> + <p> + Jaques Coeur’s dark eyes cast a rapid glance, as of one who knew not who + might lurk in the recesses of a twilight cathedral. + </p> + <p> + ‘Not here,’ he said, and he led Sir Patrick away with him down the aisle, + out into the air, where a number of odd little buildings clustered round + the walls of the cathedral, even leaning against it, heedless of the + beauty they marred. + </p> + <p> + ‘By your leave, Father,’ he said, after exchanging salutations with a + priest, who was just going out to say his morning’s mass, and leaving his + tiny bare cell empty. Here Sir Patrick could incredulously tell his story, + and the merchant could only sigh and own that he feared that there was + every reason to believe that the intention was real. Jaques Coeur, + religiously, was shocked at the idea, and, politically, wished the Dauphin + to make a more profitable alliance. He whispered that the sooner the lady + was out of reach the better, and even offered to advance a loan to + facilitate the journey. + </p> + <p> + There followed a consultation in the securest place that could be devised, + namely, in the antechamber where Sir Patrick and Lady Drummond slept to + guard their young princesses, in the palace at Tours, Jean, Eleanor, and + Madame de Ste. Petronelle having a bedroom within. + </p> + <p> + Sir Patrick’s view was that Jean might take her leave in full state and + honour, leaving Eleanor to marry her Duke in due time; but the girl + shuddered at this. ‘Oh no, no; he would call himself my brother for the + nonce and throw me into some convent! There is nothing for it but to make + it impossible. Sir Patie, fetch Geordie, and tell him, an’ he loves me, to + wed me on the spot, and bear me awa’ to bonnie Scotland. Would that I had + never been beguiled into quitting it.’ + </p> + <p> + ‘Geordie Douglas! You were all for flouting him a while ago,’ said + Eleanor, puzzled. + </p> + <p> + ‘Dinna be sae daft like, Elleen, that was but sport, and—and a maid + may not hold herself too cheap! Geordie that followed me all the way from + home, and was sair hurt for me, and freed me from yon awsome castle. Oh, + could ye trow that I could love ony but he?’ + </p> + <p> + It was not too easy to refrain from saying, ‘So that’s the end of all your + airs,’ but the fear of making her fly off again withheld Lady Drummond, + and even Eleanor. + </p> + <p> + George did not lodge in the castle, and Sir Patrick could not sound him + till the morning; but for a long space after the two sisters had laid + their heads on the pillow Jean was tossing, sometimes sobbing; and to her + sister’s consolations she replied, ‘Oh, Elleen, he can never forgive me! + Why did my hard, dour, ungrateful nature so sport with his leal loving + heart? Will he spurn me the now? Geordie, Geordie, I shall never see your + like! It would but be my desert if I were left behind to that treacherous + spiteful prince,—I wad as soon be a mouse in a cat’s claw!’ + </p> + <p> + But George of Angus made no doubt. He had won his ladylove at last, and + the only further doubt remained as to how the matter was to be carried + out. Jaques Coeur was consulted again. No priest at Tours would, he + thought, dare to perform the ceremony, for fear of after-vengeance of the + Dauphin; and Sir Patrick then suggested Father Romuald, who had been + lingering in his train waiting to cross the Alps till his Scotch friends + should have departed and winter be over; but the deed would hardly be + safely done within the city. + </p> + <p> + The merchant’s advice was this: Sir Patrick, his Lady, and the Master of + Angus had better openly take leave of the Court and start on the way to + Brittany. No opposition would be made, though if Louis suspected Lady + Jean’s presence in their party, he might close the gates and detain her; + Jaques Coeur therefore thought she had better travel separately at first. + For Eleanor, as the betrothed bride of Sigismund, there was no might + therefore remain at Court with the Queen. Jaques Coeur, the greatest + merchant of his day, had just received a large train of waggons loaded + with stuffs and other wares from Bourges, on the way to Nantes, and he + proposed that the Lady Jean should travel with one attendant female in one + of these, passing as the wife and daughter of the foreman. These two + personages had actually travelled to Tours, and were content to remain + there, while their places were taken by Madame de Ste. Petronelle and + Jean. + </p> + <p> + We must not describe the parting of the sisters, nor the many messages + sent by Elleen to bonny Scotland, and the brothers and sisters she was + willing to see no more for the sake of her Austrian Duke. Of her all that + needs to be said is that she lived and died happy and honoured, delighting + him by her flow of wit and poetry, and only regretting that she was a + childless wife. + </p> + <p> + Barbe and Trudchen were to remain in her suite, Barbe still grieving for + ‘her boy,’ and hoping to devote all she could obtain as wage or largesse + to masses for his soul, and Trudchen, very happy in the new world, though + being broken in with some difficulty to civilised life. + </p> + <p> + Having been conveyed by by-streets to the great factory or shop of Maltre + Coeur at Tours, a wonder in itself, though far inferior to his main + establishment at Bourges, Madame de Ste. Petronelle and Jean, with her + faithful Skywing nestled under her cloak, were handed by Jaques himself to + seats in a covered wain, containing provisions for them and also some more + delicate wares, destined for the Duchess of Brittany. He was himself in + riding gear, and a troop of armed servants awaited him on horseback. + </p> + <p> + ‘Was he going with them?’ Jean asked. + </p> + <p> + ‘Not all the way,’ he said; but he would not part with the lady till he + had resigned her to the charge of the Sire de Glenuskie. The state of + should accompany any valuable convoy, that his going with the party would + excite no suspicion. + </p> + <p> + So they journeyed on in the wain at the head of a quarter of a mile of + waggons and pack-horses, slowly indeed, but so steadily that they were + sure of a good start before the princess’s departure was known to the + Court. + </p> + <p> + It was at the evening halt at a conventual grange that they came up with + the rest of the party, and George Douglas spurred forward to meet them, + and hold out his eager arms as Jean sprang from the waggon. Wisdom as well + as love held that it would be better that Jean should enter Brittany as a + wife, so that the Duke might not be bribed or intimidated into yielding + her to Louis. It was in the little village church, very early the next + morning, that George Douglas received the reward of his long patience in + the hand of Joanna Stewart, a wiser, less petulant, and more womanly being + than the vain and capricious lassie whom he had followed from Scotland two + years previously. + </p> + <p> + <br /><br /><br /><br /> + </p> +<pre xml:space="preserve"> + + + + + +End of Project Gutenberg’s Two Penniless Princesses, by Charlotte M. Yonge + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TWO PENNILESS PRINCESSES *** + +***** This file should be named 2942-h.htm or 2942-h.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + http://www.gutenberg.org/2/9/4/2942/ + +Produced by Sandra Laythorpe, and David Widger + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project +Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +http://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation” + or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project +Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.” + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +“Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right +of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’ WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm’s +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. + +The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official +page at http://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit http://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. +To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + http://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + + +</pre> + </body> +</html> |
